as_o dr._n field_n it_o be_v that_o form_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o explication_n of_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o 375._o thereof_o of_o the_o ch._n p._n 375._o which_o the_o first_o christian_n receive_v of_o the_o same_o apostle_n that_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n commend_v to_o posterity_n thus_o he_o this_o then_o be_v the_o tradition_n that_o be_v chief_o vindicate_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v not_o the_o deficiency_n of_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o the_o main_a and_o prime_a and_o universal_o necessary-to-be-known_a article_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o necessity_n that_o these_o be_v supply_v and_o complete_v with_o other_o not_o write_v traditional_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o catholic_n do_v question_n but_o the_o non-clearness_n of_o scripture_n for_o several_a of_o these_o point_n such_o as_o that_o they_o may_v be_v miss-understood_a which_o non-câearness_a of_o they_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o make_v use_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n for_o a_o true_a exposition_n and_o sense_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o assert_v and_o wonder_v that_o after_o the_o appearance_n of_o so_o many_o grievous_a heresy_n and_o shall_v deny_v for_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n contain_v all_o the_o chief_a and_o material_a point_n of_o a_o christian_n belief_n what_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o except_o that_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n also_o grant_n can_v be_v learn_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o except_v those_o practical_o wherein_o the_o church_n only_o require_v a_o belief_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o they_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o they_o can_v be_v show_v to_o be_v against_o scripture_n i_o say_v what_o speculative_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o for_o which_o catholic_n rest_v mere_o on_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o do_v not_o for_o it_o allege_v scripture_n i_o mean_v even_o that_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n allow_v a_o thing_n observe_v also_o by_o dr._n field_n 20._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o but_o too_o much_o extend_v this_o be_v so_o clear_a say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v grant_v no_o principal_a point_n thereof_o deliver_v by_o bare_a and_o only_a tradition_n that_o therein_o the_o romanist_n contrary_a themselves_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o same_o thing_n they_o pretend_v to_o hold_v by_o tradition_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v if_o we_o run_v through_o the_o thing_n question_v between_o they_o and_o we_o they_o contrary_v not_o themselves_o in_o their_o hold_v several_a thing_n to_o be_v deliver_v clear_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v also_o but_o obscure_o or_o more_o evadable_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n again_o 377._o again_o ib._n p._n 377._o so_o that_o for_o matter_n of_o faith_n say_v he_o we_o may_v conclude_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o learned_a of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o either_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o thence_o and_o by_o other_o thing_n evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n or_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v conclude_v thus_o he_o i_o say_v then_o not_o this_o whether_o the_o main_a or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o to_o all_o point_n necessary_a by_o all_o to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v be_v contain_v there_o but_o this_o whether_o so_o clear_o that_o the_o unlearned_a use_v a_o right_a diligence_n can_v therein_o mistake_v or_o do_v not_o need_v therein_o another_o guide_n be_v the_o thing_n here_o contest_v §_o 41_o for_o a_o particular_a reply_n then_o to_o what_o be_v here_o say_v to_o α_n one_a i_o ask_v if_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_o reveal_v α_n r._n to_o α_n and_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n clear_o decide_v in_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a how_o have_v controversy_n in_o necessary_n as_o concern_v the_o trinity_n our_o lord_n deity_n and_o humanity_n etc._n etc._n in_o several_a age_n arise_v and_o gain_v many_o follower_n here_o will_v they_o say_v that_o such_o controversy_n be_v not_o in_o necessary_n how_o then_o come_v the_o first_o general_n council_n extol_v by_o protestant_n to_o put_v they_o in_o the_o creed_n or_o to_o exact_a assent_n to_o they_o upon_o anathema_n which_o council_n they_o affirm_v in_o non-necessaries_a fallible_a and_o in_o what_o they_o be_v fallible_a unjust_o impose_v assent_n or_o will_v they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v in_o necessary_n and_o that_o the_o unlearned_a may_v easy_o discern_v and_o decide_v they_o and_o that_o not_o by_o tradition_n but_o only_a scripture_n how_o happen_v it_o then_o that_o heretofore_o so_o many_o learned_a unlearned_a when_o forsake_v the_o church_n guidance_n err_v in_o they_o but_o if_o they_o say_v this_o happen_v for_o want_n of_o a_o due_a diligence_n in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o scripture_n thus_o they_o leave_v man_n in_o great_a perplexity_n when_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o only_o obscure_a to_o they_o through_o their_o negligent_a search_n and_o so_o when_o the_o point_n perhaps_o may_v be_v necessary_a thus_o a_o illiterate_a christian_n not_o discern_v from_o clear_a scripture_n whether_o sociniansme_n or_o antisocinianisme_a be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o he_o be_v very_o solicitous_a to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o and_o consult_v they_o concern_v it_o they_o tell_v he_o there_o be_v no_o other_o director_n leave_v he_o beside_o scripture_n who_o judgement_n he_o may_v secure_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n or_o council_n here_o be_v wave_v by_o they_o because_o this_o judgement_n allow_v or_o authorize_v will_v infer_v the_o belief_n of_o some_o other_o point_n which_o they_o approve_v not_o only_a this_o satisfaction_n they_o seem_v to_o leave_v he_o that_o if_o neither_o side_n be_v clear_a to_o he_o in_o scripture_n neither_o much_o matter_n it_o which_o side_n he_o hold_v for_o truth_n for_o god_n say_v they_o have_v there_o clear_o reveal_v all_o necessary_n but_o he_o inquire_v further_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o firm_o believe_v anti-socinianism_a and_o also_o ground_n their_o faith_n of_o this_o upon_o the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o it_o and_o then_o it_o appear_v to_o they_o clear_a in_o scripture_n how_o they_o know_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o necessary_a truth_n and_o so_o his_o salvation_n ruin_v if_o he_o believe_v the_o contrary_a here_o what_o they_o can_v answer_v that_o will_v not_o more_o perplex_v he_o i_o see_v not_o since_o so_o long_a as_o he_o may_v possible_o fail_v in_o a_o due_a diligence_n though_o only_o require_v according_a to_o his_o condition_n he_o can_v be_v satisfy_v whether_o the_o point_n to_o every_o due_a searcher_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o scripture_n and_o also_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a nor_o yet_o will_v they_o allow_v he_o any_o other_o certain_a director_n in_o it_o but_o the_o same_o scripture_n which_o appear_v to_o he_o ambiguous_a hear_v what_o mr._n stillingfleet_n interpose_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o seem_v reasonable_a say_v he_o 58._o he_o ration_n account_n p._n 58._o that_o because_o art_n and_o subtlety_n may_v be_v use_v by_o such_o who_o seek_v to_o pervert_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o to_o wrest_v the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o deliver_v it_o so_o far_o from_o their_o proper_a meaning_n that_o very_o few_o ordinary_a capacity_n may_v be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o to_o such_o mist_n as_o be_v cast_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o succeed_a age_n may_v be_v a_o very_a useful_a way_n but_o why_o not_o a_o necessary_a way_n i_o pray_v upon_o the_o former_a supposa_fw-mi for_o we_o to_o embrace_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n especial_o in_o the_o great_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o for_o instance_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o trinity_n therefore_o you_o see_v in_o the_o great_a article_n scripture_n confess_v not_o so_o plain_a especial_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o ordinary_a capacity_n §_o 42_o 2_o lie_n if_o all_o necessary_n so_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n may_v we_o not_o so_o much_o the_o more_o secure_o and_o certain_o rely_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a guide_n and_o teacher_n in_o they_o to_o who_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v as_o or_o more_o plain_a than_o to_o we_o especial_o on_o their_o judgement_n when_o assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n on_o it_o for_o these_o necessary_n at_o least_o it_o seem_v no_o and_o that_o the_o case_n be_v now_o alter_v even_o now_o necessary_n be_v so_o plain_a in_o scripture_n as_o the_o unlearned_a use_v ordinary_a diligence_n can_v not_o mistake_v in_o they_o now_o necessary_n be_v
decree_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o affirm_v by_o catholic_n that_o either_o a_o non-possible_o or_o a_o non-moral_o fallible_a certainty_n of_o these_o council_n or_o of_o their_o decree_n or_o definition_n be_v necessary_a to_o all_o person_n for_o the_o attain_v a_o divine_a and_o salvifical_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n of_o which_o see_v below_o §_o 125.127_o provide_v that_o every_o one_o be_v right_o dispose_v to_o believe_v both_o concern_v council_n and_o their_o decree_n what_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v by_o their_o superior_n sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o without_o and_o before_o which_o proposal_n he_o may_v be_v not_o only_o not_o infallible_o certain_a but_o without_o peril_n to_o salvation_n ignorant_a suppose_v the_o common_a creed_n profess_a by_o he_o to_o contain_v all_o article_n that_o be_v necessary_a ratione_fw-la medii_fw-la to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v both_z what_o council_n be_v lawful_o general_n and_o what_o such_o general_a council_n have_v decree_v chap._n x._o 15._o q._n last_o catholic_n pretend_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o divine_a faith_n necessary_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v ask_v upon_o what_o ground_n a_o christian_n by_o a_o divine_a faith_n believe_v all_o those_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o be_v define_v by_o particular_a council_n where_o if_o it_o be_v say_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a the_o question_n proceed_v whence_o this_o testimony_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a unless_o it_o be_v from_o god_n word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a but_o then_o such_o writing_n for_o effect_v a_o divine_a faith_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o from_o some_o other_o divine_a revelation_n for_o a_o divine_a faith_n can_v never_o ground_v itself_o save_v on_o a_o divine_a revelation_n where_o also_o we_o can_v return_v again_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v as_o this_o be_v by_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a without_o make_v a_o circle_n §_o 120._o to_o which_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o object_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o in_o itself_o infallible_a §_o 123._o 2._o that_o divine_a faith_n always_o resolve_v itself_o into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o into_o some_o one_o wherein_o it_o ultimate_o rest_v without_o a_o process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la or_o wheel_v about_o in_o a_o circile_fw-la §_o 129._o n._n 1_o §_o 132_o 143_o 144._o 3_o 4._o that_o such_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o wrought_v in_o christian_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n §_o 164._o n._n 2._o 5_o 6._o but_o attainable_a without_o any_o extrinsical_a infallible_a introductive_a or_o proponent_a neither_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o man_n for_o the_o enjoy_n a_o divine_a and_o save_a faith_n be_v first_o infallible_o certain_a that_o the_o external_a proponent_n thereof_o be_v infallible_a §_o 127._o etc._n etc._n 7._o yet_o that_o there_o be_v those_o morally-certain_a ground_n producible_a for_o this_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o no_o other_o religion_n besides_o christianity_n nor_o no_o other_o sect_n or_o seduce_v private_a spirit_n in_o christianity_n can_v pretend_v to_o §_o 135._o 8._o that_o a_o rational_a certainty_n or_o morally-infallible_a ground_n of_o a_o christian_n faith_n for_o this_o at_o least_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o whatever_o be_v contain_v therein_o infallible_a be_v affirm_v by_o all_o §_o 136._o but_o further_o that_o a_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church-guide_n in_o necessary_n as_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o by_o tradition_n apostolical_a be_v believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o which_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o clear_v to_o they_o they_o retain_v a_o firm_a faith_n of_o all_o those_o other_o point_n that_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n as_o to_o all_o man_n so_o evident_o reveal_v as_o church-infallibility_a be_v in_o many_o of_o which_o point_v those-others_a who_o believe_v only_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n be_v liable_a to_o miscarry_v §_o 140._o show_v from_o the_o precedent_n that_o no_o circle_n be_v make_v in_o the_o roman-catholic_n resolution_n either_o of_o a_o divine_a or_o acquisite_a faith_n §_o 143._o etc._n etc._n the_o conclusion_n wherein_o of_o the_o many_o advantage_n of_o promote_a their_o salvation_n lose_v by_o protestant_n in_o persist_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n and_o reject_v the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spiritual_a guide_n of_o the_o roman-catholick_n church_n in_o this_o query_n which_o follow_v concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n wherein_o several_a catholic_n do_v various_o express_v themselves_o according_a to_o their_o liberty_n of_o opinion_n unrestrained_a by_o any_o former_a church_n definition_n and_o many_o of_o the_o term_n have_v such_o a_o latitude_n of_o signification_n as_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o speak_v so_o distinct_o as_o not_o in_o something_o to_o be_v misunderstand_v i_o have_v purposely_o quote_v several_a catholic_n author_n of_o good_a note_n in_o confirmation_n of_o what_o be_v deliver_v to_o remove_v from_o you_o all_o jealousy_n that_o any_o thing_n be_v say_v here_o new_a heterodox_n or_o former_o censure_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n §_o 120_o 15_o in_o the_o last_o place_n it_o be_v further_o press_v 15._o q._n 15._o that_o a_o moral_a certainty_n or_o if_o you_o will_v a_o moral_a infallibility_n can_v it_o perhaps_o be_v show_v for_o many_o of_o those_o thing_n mention_v in_o the_o former_a question_n yet_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o afford_v a_o ground_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o catholic_n do_v require_v as_o necessary_a for_o that_o they_o say_v that_o a_o christian_a can_v with_o a_o right_n and_o a_o divine_a faith_n believe_v the_o particular_a point_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o be_v divine_o reveal_v unless_o he_o have_v a_o infallible_a or_o not_o possible_o fallible_a assurance_n thereof_o nor_o can_v he_o have_v such_o infallible_a assurance_n unless_o the_o church_n definition_n in_o her_o general_n council_n that_o deliver_v such_o doctrine_n to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n be_v so_o infallible_a nor_o can_v he_o infallible_o believe_v the_o definition_n of_o any_o council_n in_o part_n cular_a to_o be_v so_o infallible_a unless_o he_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n for_o all_o other_o inferior_a council_n catholic_n grant_v may_v err_v in_o their_o definition_n nor_o can_v he_o be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o this_o unless_o he_o be_v so_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n too_o without_o which_o catholic_n grant_v it_o be_v no_o general_n council_n and_o if_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n also_o of_o all_o these_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a shall_v be_v pretend_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n deliver_v and_o declare_v to_o posterity_n these_o council_n in_o gross_a for_o lawful_o general_n because_o this_o church-tradition_n be_v hold_v infallible_a it_o be_v ask_v again_o whence_o this_o tradition_n be_v infallible_o know_v to_o be_v so_o where_o if_o it_o be_v say_v from_o our_o lord_n promise_n to_o the_o church_n declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church-tradition_n be_v resolve_v into_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v still_o urge_v whence_o can_v any_o know_v infallible_o either_o in_o particular_a that_o those_o text_n which_o be_v urge_v to_o make_v good_a such_o a_o promise_n have_v such_o a_o sense_n as_o is-pretended_n or_o in_o general_n that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v such_o text_n be_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n and_o here_o again_o if_o we_o return_v to_o prove_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o particular_a scripture_n or_o in_o general_a of_o the_o scripture_n be_v divine_a from_o the_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n then_o here_o again_o i_o must_v make_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n infallible_a and_o the_o former_a question_n return_v as_o unsatisfied_a by_o the_o former_a answer_n viz._n whence_o i_o can_v prove_v its_o testimony_n or_o tradition_n infallible_a of_o which_o infallibility_n for_o i_o here_o to_o resume_v a_o evidence_n from_o the_o scripture_n or_o from_o the_o former_a text_n will_v cast_v my_o reason_n into_o a_o vicious_a circle_n §_o 121_o but_o if_o i_o proceed_v and_o say_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v prove_v sufficient_o to_o be_v infallible_a from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n much_o dilate_v on_o by_o catholic_n writer_n as_o from_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o who_o have_v affirm_v their_o receive_n of_o
these_o divine_a revelation_n from_o those_o who_o be_v know_v by_o miracle_n to_o be_v send_v from_o god_n the_o multitude_n of_o they_o i_o say_v together_o with_o their_o wisdom_n their_o sanctity_n their_o unanimous_a consent_n throughout_o so_o many_o age_n their_o affirm_v such_o truth_n much_o contrary_n to_o all_o their_o secular_a interest_n to_o the_o appetite_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o ambition_n of_o this_o world_n their_o deliver_v they_o both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n to_o their_o child_n and_o posterity_n to_o be_v deliver_v again_o to_o they_o as_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a moment_n and_o wherein_o it_o eternal_o concern_v they_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v as_o also_o their_o strict_a charge_n to_o deliver_v nothing_o in_o these_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o their_o child_n which_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n their_o suffering_n many_o time_n cruel_a death_n for_o the_o verity_n of_o their_o testimony_n the_o miracle_n in_o several_a age_n do_v also_o by_o they_o which_o miracle_n when_o do_v for_o the_o testify_a of_o their_o faith_n such_o in_o those_o age_n as_o have_v see_v have_v have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o this_o faith_n as_o those_o who_o see_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o who_o have_v not_o see_v but_o believe_v the_o credible_a relator_n of_o they_o have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o those_o also_o have_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n who_o believe_v as_o doubtless_o many_o do_v not_o see_v but_o only_o hear_v of_o their_o miracle_n if_o i_o say_v i_o proceed_v thâs_n to_o prove_v the_o church-tradition_n infallible_a from_o these_o motive_n of_o credibility_n here_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v concern_v these_o motive_n whether_o they_o also_o be_v pretend_v infallible_a and_o whether_o they_o carry_v a_o certainty_n in_o they_o equal_a to_o that_o infallible_a assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n that_o be_v give_v to_o divine_a revelation_n and_o particular_o to_o this_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n which_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v more_o firm_a than_o any_o humane_a knowledge_n can_v be_v because_o it_o do_v ultimate_o rest_v upon_o divine_a authority_n and_o yet_o which_o divine_a faith_n at_o last_o to_o avoid_v a_o circle_n be_v by_o catholic_n for_o its_o certainty_n make_v to_o rest_n upon_o these_o prudential_a motive_n it_o be_v ask_v therefore_o in_o the_o last_o place_n whether_o these_o motive_n be_v pretend_v not-possibly-fallible_a or_o no._n if_o not_o how_o can_v a_o infallible_a or_o divine_a faith_n be_v ground_v on_o motive_n only_o high_o probable_a or_o only_o moral_o certain_a or_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v prove_v or_o conclusion_n be_v render_v certain_a and_o not-possibly-fallible_a to_o i_o from_o a_o possibly-fallible_a proof_n or_o medium_n since_o the_o thing_n prove_v or_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o assent_n must_v be_v more_o credible_a evident_a and_o certain_a to_o i_o than_o the_o thing_n prove_v but_o if_o these_o motive_n also_o be_v affirm_v infallible_a 1_o how_o can_v that_o be_v since_o all_o man_n however_o take_v divide_v or_o conjoin_v single_a or_o a_o multitude_n vulgar_a or_o wise_a and_o learned_a be_v possible_o liable_a both_o to_o deceive_v and_o to_o be_v deceive_v and_o 2_o thus_o at_o least_o divine_a faith_n will_v at_o last_o be_v build_v upon_o and_o resolve_v into_o not_o divine_a but_o humane_a authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n §_o 122_o and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v here_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o divine_a faith_n into_o these_o prudential_a motive_n whether_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a be_v only_o as_o into_o extrinsical_a prerequisites_n or_o introductive_n to_o it_o not_o as_o into_o the_o formal_a cause_n or_o ground_n of_o it_o for_o so_o i_o ground_n always_o the_o divine_a and_o infallible_a assent_n i_o give_v to_o any_o article_n of_o my_o faith_n upon_o divine_a revelation_n and_o the_o prime_a verity_n because_o god_n who_o i_o believe_v say_v it_o can_v lie_v it_o will_v be_v ask_v still_o since_o some_o divine_a revelation_n be_v always_o the_o final_a motive_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n from_o what_o other_o divine_a revelation_n i_o do_v believe_v such_o a_o point_n to_o be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n in_o which_o proceed_v if_o it_o go_v not_o in_o infinitum_fw-la i_o must_v come_v at_o last_o to_o some_o divine_a revelation_n concern_v which_o i_o can_v produce_v no_o other_o revelation_n divine_a and_o so_o no_o ground_n at_o all_o why_o or_o from_o which_o i_o can_v believe_v it_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n to_o be_v such_o unless_o i_o will_v betake_v myself_o to_o a_o circle_n so_o for_o example_n in_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o divine_a revelation_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o again_o the_o scripture_n god_n word_n from_o divine_a revelation_n unwritten_a deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n i_o can_v produce_v no_o further_o divine_a revelation_n that_o testify_v such_o revelation_n or_o tradition_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n if_o i_o return_v not_o back_o to_o the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o return_v thither_o make_v a_o circle_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n will_v happen_v the_o other_o way_n also_o in_o prove_v scripture_n from_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o this_o apostolical_a tradition_n again_o from_o church-infallibility_a §_o 123_o to_o which_o intricate_a question_n to_o answer_v as_o distinct_o as_o i_o can_v 1_o it_o be_v agree_v by_o all_o that_o the_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v save_v must_v be_v in_o itself_o most_o true_a and_o infallible_a or_o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o certitudo_fw-la objecti_fw-la and_o those_o be_v true_a revelation_n which_o our_o faith_n apprehend_v to_o be_v so_o 2_o agree_v also_o that_o such_o divine_a 1._o §._o 124._o n._n 1._o and_o save_a faith_n do_v always_o ground_n itself_o on_o god_n word_n or_o divine_a revelation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v believe_v and_o upon_o the_o authority_n veracity_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n reveal_v such_o thing_n and_o that_o christian_n however_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o divine_a revelation_n from_o their_o parent_n pastor_n or_o the_o church_n in_o her_o council_n yet_o resolve_v this_o divine_a faith_n no_o otherwise_o as_o to_o the_o ultimate_a ground_n and_o reason_n of_o their_o believe_v than_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v who_o receive_v these_o revevelation_n immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o god_n himself_o namely_o into_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n deliver_v such_o particular_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n 3_o again_o agree_v 2._o §._o 124._o n._n 2._o that_o this_o divine_a faith_n be_v wrought_v no_o otherwise_o in_o the_o soul_n than_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n fides_fw-la spirit_n see_v s._n thom._n 22._o q._n 6._o de_fw-fr causâ_fw-la fides_fw-la many_o time_n beget_v so_o firm_a a_o adherence_n to_o the_o thing_n believe_v not_o only_o that_o what_o be_v divine_a revelation_n can_v deceive_v but_o that_o such_o particular_a point_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o exceed_v that_o adherence_n we_o have_v to_o any_o humane_a science_n whatsoever_o wherein_o there_o be_v often_o a_o possibility_n of_o deceit_n though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n yet_o as_o to_o we_o i.e._n that_o we_o may_v think_v we_o know_v what_o and_o when_o we_o do_v not_o for_o this_o see_v the_o archbp_a 72._o archbp_a p._n 72._o faith_n he_o mean_v the_o habit_n or_o act_v of_o a_o save_a faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o a_o infuse_a habit_n in_o respect_n whereof_o the_o soul_n be_v mere_o recipient_a and_o therefore_o the_o sole_a infufer_n the_o holy_a ghost_n must_v not_o be_v exclude_v from_o that_o work_n which_o none_o can_v do_v but_o he_o which_o virtue_n of_o faith_n of_o whatever_o article_n though_o it_o receive_v a_o kind_n of_o preparation_n or_o occasion_n of_o beginning_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o propose_v and_o induce_v to_o the_o faith_n yet_o iâ_n end_v in_o god_n reveal_v within_o and_o teach_v within_o that_o which_o the_o church_n preach_v without_o and_o p._n 75._o man_n do_v what_o he_o can_v be_v still_o apt_a to_o search_v and_o seek_v for_o a_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v believe_v though_o after_o he_o once_o believe_v his_o faith_n grow_v strong_a than_o either_o his_o reason_n or_o his_o knowledge_n and_o great_a reason_n for_o this_o because_o it_o go_v high_a and_o so_o upon_o a_o safe_a principle_n than_o either_o of_o the_o other_o reason_n or_o knowledge_n can_v in_o this_o life_n quote_v in_o the_o margin_n s_o thom._n 5._o thom._n p._n 1._o q._n 1._o a._n 5._o quia_fw-la sâientiae_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la habent_fw-la ex_fw-la naturali_fw-la lumine_fw-la rationis_fw-la humanae_fw-la quae_fw-la potest_fw-la errare_fw-la theologia_n antem_fw-la quae_fw-la dâcet_fw-la &_o objectum_fw-la &_o
mean_v infallible_o true_a to_o we_o and_o apply_v infallible_o not_o to_o the_o object_n but_o act_n of_o faith_n seem_v faulty_a because_o god_n may_v oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v either_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v infallible_o true_a i._n e._n as_o to_o we_o so_o as_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o our_o error_n in_o it_o or_o only_o most_o credible_o so_o according_a to_o the_o proof_n or_o ground_n we_o have_v of_o such_o belief_n therefore_o though_o it_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v that_o god_n never_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v i.e._n to_o be_v absolute_o true_a what_o be_v real_o a_o lie_n or_o false_a and_o true_a also_o that_o if_o we_o know_v that_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v infallible_o true_a we_o have_v the_o great_a assurance_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v infallible_o true_a yet_o so_o 1._o be_v this_o true_a that_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v nor_o for_o infallible_o but_o only_o for_o most_o credible_o true_a what_o be_v from_o those_o principle_n which_o right_a reason_n can_v attain_v of_o it_o only_z most_o credible_o so_o and_o 2._o so_o be_v this_o also_o true_a that_o god_n have_v not_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v christianity_n as_o infallible_o true_a from_o the_o moral_a certainty_n we_o have_v thereof_o suppose_v that_o this_o moral_a certainty_n be_v not_o absolute_o infallible_a i_o mean_v as_o to_o a_o possibility_n of_o the_o contrary_n upon_o this_o supposition_n therefore_o that_o our_o moral_a certainty_n or_o assurance_n on_o which_o we_o ground_n the_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n involve_v a_o possibility_n of_o falsehood_n god_n do_v not_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v christian_a religion_n with_o a_o acquisite_a or_o rational_a faith_n from_o this_o evidence_n as_o free_v from_o all_o possibility_n of_o falsehood_n or_o as_o absolute_o infallible_a but_o to_o believe_v in_o the_o same_o degree_n the_o one_o to_o be_v credible_a as_o we_o do_v the_o other_o in_o the_o same_o degree_n christian_n religion_n true_a as_o we_o do_v the_o ground_n thereof_o and_o no_o further_o and_o here_o mr._n stillingfleet_n seem_v to_o incur_v the_o fault_n he_o impute_v to_o other_o ibid._n other_o ibid._n of_o make_v the_o conclusion_n sure_a than_o the_o premise_n if_o he_o will_v make_v christian_a religion_n by_o this_o way_n any_o whit_n more_o infallible_a than_o moral_a certainty_n be_v so_o also_o in_o the_o next_o page_n 208._o page_n p._n 208._o if_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v from_o that_o text_n of_o scripture_n joh._n 16.13_o any_o infallible_a assurance_n and_o not_o only_o a_o moral_a certainty_n to_o we_o of_o the_o apostle_n infallibility_n in_o the_o conveyance_n of_o scripture_n himself_o must_v incur_v the_o circle_n he_o object_n to_o catholic_n for_o since_o we_o have_v this_o text_n of_o scripture_n only_o from_o their_o conveyance_n i_o can_v be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o till_o first_o so_o assure_v of_o their_o infallibility_n in_o convey_v it_o 3_o it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o when_o reason_n be_v not_o right_o use_v by_o we_o and_o when_o that_o seem_v to_o we_o from_o false_a reason_n most_o credible_a which_o in_o right_a reason_n be_v not_o yet_o that_o here_o also_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v this_o the_o most_o credible_a but_o then_o he_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v this_o most_o credible_a hypothetical_o only_a and_o upon_o supposition_n that_o our_o reason_n and_o reason_n be_v good_a and_o therefore_o we_o be_v oblige_v by_o he_o herein_o only_o to_o believe_v a_o truth_n namely_o this_o thing_n to_o be_v most_o credible_a hypothetical_o etc._n etc._n though_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o believe_v thus_o hypothetical_o most_o credible_a be_v absolute_o not_o true_a as_o also_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o follow_v a_o erroneous_a conscience_n neither_o do_v we_o sin_v in_o this_o follow_v it_o to_o which_o god_n oblige_v we_o and_o which_o we_o do_v only_o upon_o supposition_n that_o it_o be_v not_o erroneous_a for_o if_o we_o know_v it_o erroneous_a we_o may_v not_o follow_v it_o but_o we_o sin_n in_o not_o better_o inform_v it_o where_o god_n also_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v i_o grant_v what_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o the_o moral_a evidence_n we_o have_v from_o tradition_n be_v sufficient_a to_o produce_v such_o a_o assurance_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o god_n require_v we_o to_o have_v of_o it_o by_o a_o acquisite_a and_o rational_a faith_n and_o that_o both_o this_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o our_o faith_n build_v on_o it_o be_v moral_o infallible_a this_o of_o the_o sufficient_a certainty_n of_o church-tradition_n concern_v scripture_n and_o so_o concern_v all_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n that_o be_v build_v thereon_o affirm_v by_o protestant_n upon_o which_o ground_n also_o they_o free_o grant_v 216._o grant_v see_v chillingw_o p._n 114._o stillingf_n p._n 216._o that_o if_o any_o other_o point_n wherein_o they_o dissent_v from_o catholic_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o as_o universal_a a_o tradition_n as_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n they_o will_v subscribe_v to_o it_o §_o 138_o 2._o again_o the_o same_o sufficient_a certainty_n catholic_n also_o affirm_v to_o be_v in_o church_n tradition_n for_o what_o it_o deliver_v but_o withal_o they_o urge_v many_o motive_n of_o credibility_n concur_v in_o it_o 121._o it_o see_v before_o §._o 121._o which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o insist_v on_o by_o protestant_n some_o of_o which_o motive_n may_v add_v to_o a_o tradition_n of_o a_o less_o latitude_n a_o moral_a certainty_n as_o great_a or_o great_a from_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o person_n as_o a_o more_o universal_a tradition_n may_v have_v from_o the_o multitude_n of_o testator_n among_o which_o motive_n also_o be_v the_o miracle_n do_v in_o several_a age_n by_o such_o person_n and_o by_o these_o motive_n also_o catholic_n affirm_v *_o that_o the_o true_a religion_n may_v be_v rational_o evident_a and_o discern_v from_o all_o false_a one_o whether_o they_o be_v within_o or_o without_o the_o pale_a of_o christianity_n none_o of_o which_o sect_n can_v produce_v like_o evidence_n for_o their_o faith_n and_o *_o that_o by_o these_o our_o faith_n be_v demonstrate_v a_o rational_a service_n rom._n 12.1_o 1_o pet._n 3.15_o these_o motive_n likewise_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o they_o to_o be_v the_o ultimate_a resolution_n of_o a_o humane_a faith_n which_o be_v beget_v by_o they_o and_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o such_o a_o faith_n they_o be_v the_o formal_a principle_n of_o believe_v nor_o that_o such_o faith_n do_v exceed_v the_o certitude_n of_o this_o principle_n and_o that_o the_o assent_n we_o yield_v to_o the_o article_n which_o we_o believe_v only_o on_o this_o account_n be_v no_o strong_a or_o certain_a than_o these_o motive_n be_v on_o which_o it_o be_v ground_v all_o which_o thing_n as_o protestant_n earnest_o contend_v for_o 61._o for_o see_v stillingf_n p._n 137._o 140._o archbishop_n lawd_n p._n 61._o so_o there_o seem_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v deny_v they_o of_o this_o matter_n thus_o the_o forequote_v author_n layman_n out_o of_o scotus_n and_o other_o 183._o other_o theol._n moral_a p._n 183._o qui_fw-la credit_n propter_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la hominum_fw-la vel_fw-la simile_n motivum_fw-la humanum_fw-la be_v fide_fw-la solumodò_fw-la humanâ_fw-la credit_n and_o authoritas_fw-la illa_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la non_fw-la quatenus_fw-la consideratur_fw-la ut_fw-la organum_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la which_o we_o learn_v from_o divine_a revelation_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n first_o suppose_v say_v ut_fw-la illustris_fw-la congregatio_fw-la hominum_fw-la prudentum_fw-la etc._n etc._n est_fw-la quidem_fw-la formale_a principium_fw-la credendi_fw-la fide_fw-la humanâ_fw-la and_o accedit_fw-la quòd_fw-la assensus_fw-la cognoscitivus_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la excedere_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la principii_fw-la quo_fw-la nititur_fw-la §_o 139_o this_o be_v say_v concern_v a_o sufficient_o certain_a evidence_n in_o church-tradition_n etc._n etc._n agree_v on_o both_o by_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n that_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o the_o book_n of_o it_o call_v by_o protestant_n canonical_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o then_o 2_o the_o protestant_n decline_a the_o admission_n of_o church-tradition_n that_o be_v less_o universal_a than_o that_o of_o scripture_n be_v think_v unreasonable_a 1._o because_o of_o two_o tradition_n whereof_o one_o appear_v more_o universal_a than_o the_o other_o yet_o the_o lesser_a also_o may_v have_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n in_o it_o whereon_o to_o build_v a_o rational_a belief_n and_o hence_o protestant_n may_v have_v reason_n enough_o to_o admit_v several_a other_o tradition_n though_o not_o all_o equal_o universal_a or_o any_o so_o universal_a as_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o war_n of_o caesar_n and_o pompey_n descend_v by_o a_o more_o universal_a
former_a council_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o precede_a age_n have_v receive_v as_o general_n or_o oblige_v as_o well_o those_o council_n since_o as_o those_o before_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o century_n which_o late_a the_o other_o party_n reject_v §_o 37._o chap._n 5._o the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_a or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v 1._o that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non-necessaries_a needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o 2._o that_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n rule_n or_o guide_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o save_o the_o scripture_n §_o 39_o n._n 1._o not_o any_o certain_a live_a guide_n 1._o which_o be_v infallible_a as_o their_o guide_n the_o scripture_n be_v §_o 39_o n._n 2._o 2._o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a guide_n or_o know_v their_o decree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3._o from_o who_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o learn_v necessary_n or_o tell_v they_o what_o church_n or_o party_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v to_o in_o any_o schism_n make_v in_o which_o infallible_a guide_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a concernment_n the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v be_v silent_a ibid._n reply_n 1._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n §_o 40._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a §_o 40._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v reply_v then_o 1._o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1_o that_o some_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a as_o those_o controversy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o deity_n and_o humanity_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n etc._n etc._n §_o 41._o 2._o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n still_o with_o the_o more_o security_n may_v christian_n rely_v for_o they_o on_o the_o church_n judgement_n from_o which_o also_o they_o receive_v these_o scripture_n §_o 42._o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o man_n clear_o 1._o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v leave_v this_o one_o point_n clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n of_o they_o follow_v the_o direction_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o exposition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o these_o guide_n §_o 43._o 2._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n all_o such_o necessary_a truth_n to_o be_v successive_o communicate_v by_o they_o to_o his_o people_n §_o 44._o 3._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n the_o sense_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v in_o point_n necessary_a any_o way_n obscure_a ibid._n 4._o sufficient_a if_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v clear_o enough_o reveal_v all_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o these_o church-guide_n use_v due_a mean_n though_o he_o have_v not_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o unlearned_a for_o from_o those_o these_o may_v learn_v they_o §_o 45._o ii_o concern_v a_o live_a guide_n 1._o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n especial_o several_a text_n compare_v be_v ambiguous_a and_o in_o controversy_n the_o christian_n guide_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n can_v be_v the_o scripture_n but_o either_o the_o church_n or_o their_o own_o judgement_n §_o 46._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v direct_v christian_n to_o what_o guide_n they_o be_v to_o repair_v §_o 46._o n._n 2._o or_o to_o what_o church_n prelate_n or_o party_n in_o any_o schism_n christian_n for_o ever_o ought_v to_o adhere_v §_o 47._o n._n 2._o 3._o yet_o that_o god_n have_v give_v christian_n a_o sufficient_a direction_n herein_o in_o his_o leave_v a_o due_a subordination_n among_o these_o governor_n whereby_o the_o inferior_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o superior_a and_o a_o parâ_n unto_o the_o whole_a §_o 47._o n._n 3._o and_o that_o christian_n may_v more_o clear_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n controvert_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o the_o three_o discourse_n examine_v what_o measure_n of_o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o these_o guide_n and_o to_o the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o controversy_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o roman_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n do_v agree_v 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o those_o book_n by_o the_o protestant_n style_v canonical_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o in_o these_o scripture_n agree_v on_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o necessary_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v contradistinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n §_o 4._o 4._o that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o his_o church_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 5._o chap._n 2._o catholic_n go_v on_o and_o affirm_v 5._o that_o the_o church_n guide_v at_o least_o assemble_v in_o lawful_a general_n council_n shall_v never_o err_v in_o their_o determine_a thing_n of_o necessary_a faith_n §_o 6._o 6._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o necessary_n not_o take_v for_o those_o that_o be_v absolute_o require_v but_o for_o all_o that_o be_v very_o beneficial_a to_o salvation_n §_o 9_o 7._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o they_o not_o as_o infalliblly_v inspire_v to_o teach_v any_o new_a but_o as_o divine_o assist_v in_o deliver_v of_o the_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n be_v for_o ever_o preserve_v equal_o infallible_a §_o 10._o 8._o that_o for_o know_v what_o or_o how_o many_o of_o former_a council_n have_v be_v lawful_o general_n and_o oblige_v a_o christian_a may_v safe_o rely_v on_o the_o general_n judgement_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n §_o 11._o 9_o that_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o church-governor_n from_o some_o council_n yet_o their_o acceptance_n of_o its_o decree_n or_o concurrence_n with_o its_o doctrine_n render_v it_o equivalent_a to_o a_o council_n general_n §_o 13._o 10._o that_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n part_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o yield_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o whole_a §_o 14._o chap._n 3_o 11._o that_o whatever_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o any_o know_a definition_n pass_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n of_o any_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v heretical_a §_o 16._o 12._o that_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n which_o for_o any_o cause_n whatever_o do_v actual_o relinquish_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n be_v schismatical_a §_o 20._o 13._o but_o yet_o that_o several_a person_n or_o church_n coordinate_a may_v without_o schism_n differ_v in_o any_o thing_n opinion_n or_o practice_v wherein_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o accord_v by_o their_o common_a superior_n or_o by_o the_o whole_a §_o 23._o chap._n 4._o but_o protestant_n after_o the_o four_o first_o proposition_n concede_v in_o some_o sense_n do_v thus_o endeavour_v to_o qualify_v and_o restrain_v they_o 5._o in_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n unerrable_a in_o necessary_n they_o understand_v only_o such_o few_o necessary_n without_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o which_o salvation_n can_v be_v attain_v §_o 24._o 6._o therefore_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o though_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v err_v in_o such_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o it_o or_o all_o particular_a church_n in_o some_o one_o age_n or_o age_n may_v in_o other_o the_o error_n wherein_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n §_o 25._o because_o it_o appear_v that_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n from_o which_o protestant_n dissent_v be_v general_a tenant_n and_o practice_n
these_o doctrine_n sufficient_o reveal_v to_o the_o then-appointed_n ecclesiastical_a guide_n from_o who_o both_o the_o present_a people_n and_o the_o future_a successor_n of_o these_o guide_n both_o be_v and_o may_v rational_o know_v they_o be_v to_o learn_v they_o and_o so_o have_v there_o be_v no_o scripture_n may_v by_o mere_a tradition_n have_v learn_v they_o sufficient_o to_o this_o day_n for_o their_o salvation_n this_o be_v a_o second_o way_n then_o of_o sufficient_a revelation_n beside_o or_o without_o that_o in_o scripture_n viz._n all_o necessary_a truth_n since_o the_o pen_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o so_o manifest_v clear_o to_o and_o so_o deliver_v clear_o by_o the_o church-guide_n as_o they_o be_v manifest_v to_o they_o before_o scripture_n 3_o because_o as_o all_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n may_v before_o so_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n may_v after_o the_o writing_n allo_fw-la of_o the_o new-testament-scripture_n have_v be_v clear_o enough_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n and_o by_o the_o first_o scripture-expositor_n to_o the_o christian_a people_n that_o be_v then_o and_o so_o to_o posterity_n though_o meanwhile_n the_o letter_n of_o such_o scripture_n do_v not_o so_o necessary_o enforce_v this_o traditive_a sense_n as_o not_o to_o be_v possible_o or_o sometime_o probable_o capable_a of_o another_o this_o be_v a_o three_o way_n of_o sufficient_a revelation_n viz._n by_o the_o clear_a descend_a tradition_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o scripture_n which_o be_v in_o their_o letter_n ambiguous_a §_o 45_o but_o 4_o lie_v suppose_v it_o needful_a that_o all_o such_o necessary_n must_v be_v clear_o reveal_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n yet_o be_v this_o sufficient_a to_o save_v god_n proceed_n from_o tyranny_n if_o that_o they_o be_v with_o sufficient_a clearness_n reveal_v therein_o to_o the_o church_n guide_v alone_o and_o to_o the_o learned_a that_o diligent_o read_v and_o compare_v the_o scripture_n together_o and_o use_v the_o help_n of_o the_o comparing_n and_o comment_n of_o other_o and_o if_o that_o the_o illiterate_a people_n be_v remit_v by_o god_n in_o all_o age_n to_o learn_v these_o necessary_n from_o their_o guide_n this_o be_v a_o four_o way_n of_o sufficient_a revelation_n of_o necessary_n i._n e._n a_o revelation_n of_o they_o in_o scripture_n such_o as_o must_v be_v clear_a to_o the_o church-guide_n in_o stead_n of_o that_o other_o revelation_n there_o of_o mr._n chillingworth_n such_o as_o must_v be_v clear_a to_o all_o to_o i_o answer_v 1._o §._o 46._o n._n 1._o that_o where_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v ambiguous_a β._n r._n to_o β._n and_o in_o controversy_n which_o sense_n and_o not_o the_o letter_n only_o be_v god_n word_n here_o their_o guide_n to_o know_v this_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v this_o by_o all_o allow_v infallible_a scripture_n which_o protestant_n pretend_v but_o must_v be_v either_o the_o church_n judgement_n which_o they_o say_v be_v fallible_a or_o their_o own_o which_o all_o reasonable_a man_n i_o shall_v think_v will_v say_v be_v more_o fallible_a to_o γ._o see_v many_o of_o their_o question_n solve_v γ._n r._n to_o γ._n disc_n 3._o §_o 86._o and_o concern_v our_o understanding_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n better_a than_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n see_v below_o §_o 48._o etc._n etc._n to_o δ._o one_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a δ._n §._o 46._o n._n 2._o r._n to_o δ._n that_o god_n shall_v direct_v christian_n in_o this_o matter_n by_o the_o scripture_n since_o they_o be_v sufficient_o direct_v herein_o also_o before_o the_o scripture_n i_o mean_v before_o the_o write_n of_o those_o of_o the_o new-testament_n and_o since_o they_o may_v be_v sufficient_o assure_v from_o those_o who_o be_v send_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o teach_v they_o christianity_n in_o this_o point_n also_o that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o teach_v they_o but_o 2_o it_o be_v maintain_v that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v do_v this_o 3._o §._o 46._o n._n 3._o and_z *_o have_v tell_v we_o etc._n we_o eph._n 4.11_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o have_v set_v these_o guide_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o edify_a and_o perfect_v thereof_o and_o for_o this_o in_o particular_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n with_o which_o wind_n of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n as_o experience_n show_v from_o age_n to_o age_n will_v have_v be_v grievous_o shake_v and_o dissipate_v but_o that_o these_o governor_n from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o state_v her_o doctrine_n have_v preserve_v her_o child_n from_o it_o and_o *_o have_v tell_v we_o again_o 3.16_o again_o 2_o pet._n 3.16_o that_o the_o unlearned_a wrest_v some_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v plain_a it_o seem_v to_o the_o learned_a in_o that_o these_o wrester_n be_v the_o unlearned_a to_o their_o own_o damnation_n therefore_o these_o be_v such_o scripture_n also_o as_o speak_v concern_v necessary_n and_o *_o have_v therefore_o give_v we_o a_o charge_n to_o obey_v these_o guide_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o care_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o follow_v their_o faith_n 17._o faith_n heb._n 13.7_o 17._o *_o and_o declare_v that_o he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v he_o 10._o he_o luke_n 10._o add_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n especicial_o when_o gaeher_v together_o 20._o together_o mat._n 18.17_o 20._o and_o will_v have_v the_o refractory_a to_o they_o excommunicate_v 18.17_o excommunicate_v mat._n 18.17_o and_o according_o to_o this_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o it_o in_o primitive_a tradition_n the_o church-guide_n from_o age_n to_o age_n have_v meet_v together_o settle_v the_o churchche_n doctrine_n exact_v conformity_n excommunicate_v dissenter_n &c_n &c_n next_o to_o ε._n where_o they_o say_v that_o god_n foresee_v 1._o §._o 47._o n._n 1._o that_o division_n will_v happen_v among_o these_o guide_n ε._n r._n to_o ε._n will_v have_v tell_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o in_o such_o case_n among_o the_o several_a party_n of_o they_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o follow_v and_o adhere_v to_o as_o that_o we_o shall_v adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o most_o general_a council_n and_o in_o dissent_v vote_n to_o the_o major_a part_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n to_o which_o purpose_n be_v those_o word_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n 61._o chillingworth_n p._n 61._o if_o our_o saviour_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n have_v intend_v that_o all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n shall_v be_v by_o some_o visible_a judge_n final_o determine_v who_o can_v doubt_v but_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o will_v have_v express_v himself_o about_o this_o matter_n he_o will_v have_v say_v plain_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v appoint_v to_o decide_v all_o emergent_a controversy_n for_o that_o our_o saviour_n design_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o add_v or_o a_o general_n counci_n to_o this_o office_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o say_v so_o nor_o cause_n it_o to_o be_v write_v ad_fw-la rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la by_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n so_o much_o as_o once_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o uncertain_a principle_n by_o 13_o or_o 14._o more_o uncertain_a consequence_n he_o that_o can_v believe_v it_o let_v he_o and_o p._n 104._o he_o say_v it_o will_v have_v be_v infinite_o beneficial_a to_o the_o church_n perhaps_o as_o much_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bible_n that_o in_o some_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v to_o be_v undoubted_o receive_v this_o one_o proposition_n have_v be_v set_v down_o in_o term_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o their_o adherent_n shall_v always_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o p._n 171._o he_o argue_v thus_o seeing_z god_n do_v nothing_o in_o vain_a and_o see_v it_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o appoint_v a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o not_o to_o tell_v we_o so_o plain_o who_o it_o be_v and_o see_v last_o he_o have_v not_o tell_v we_o plain_o no_o not_o at_o all_o who_o it_o be_v be_v it_o not_o evident_a he_o have_v appoint_v none_o see_v the_o same_o thing_n urge_v by_o mr._n stillingfleet_n rat._n account_v p._n 465._o and_o see_v all_o this_o as_o it_o be_v translate_v only_o out_o of_o the_o socinian_n book_n before_o §_o 40._o n._n 1._o to_o this_o one_a i_o answer_v 2._o §._o 47._o n._n 2._o that_o negative_a argn_v from_o scripture_n 1._o 1._o such_o as_o this_o a_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a concernment_n to_o all_o christian_n if_o it_o be_v true_a will_v have_v be_v clear_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v not_o find_v clear_o express_v rherein_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a as_o
again_o he_o use_v the_o ordinary_a care_n of_o person_n desire_v instruction_n can_v but_o come_v to_o know_v its_o council_n and_o their_o definition_n its_o doctrine_n and_o law_n which_o we_o find_v as_o the_o leader_n of_o all_o sect_n do_v they_o so_o those_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v studious_a to_o divulge_v and_o publish_v so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v by_o he_o consider_v his_o condition_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o the_o profession_n or_o practice_n thereof_o require_v of_o he_o for_o example_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o be_v there_o use_v the_o ordinary_a care_n necessary_a in_o matter_n of_o his_o salvation_n that_o first_o can_v easy_o discern_v this_o church_n from_o the_o several_a other_o late_a and_o unheaded_a sect_n that_o be_v in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o this_o church_n know_v who_o may_v not_o easy_o attain_v therein_o to_o a_o knowledge_n also_o of_o its_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o canon_n its_o synod_n or_o convocation_n deliver_v by_o the_o common_a tradition_n and_o by_o the_o church-guide_n and_o public_a write_n daily_o inculcate_v so_o far_o as_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o be_v to_o he_o necessary_a the_o same_o evidence_n therefore_o in_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v allow_v not_o to_o be_v want_v to_o those_o who_o have_v once_o find_v among_o the_o many_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o church_n which_o be_v their_o right_a guide_n §_o 49_o and_o little_a reason_n have_v the_o reform_v to_o affirm_v a_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v make_v most_o evident_a even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a in_o the_o scripture_n if_o assert_v on_o this_o account_n because_o such_o people_n have_v no_o mean_n of_o attain_v any_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o with_o little_a reareason_n seem_v mr._n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o to_o affirm_v which_o yet_o be_v use_v by_o many_o late_a protestant-writer_n as_o a_o main_a ground_n of_o evacuate_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n *_o that_o it_o be_v no_o easy_a a_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o the_o church_n define_v than_o what_o scripture_n determine_v and_o that_o the_o same_o art_n that_o can_v evade_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n will_v equal_o elude_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n 21._o tillot_v rule_n of_o say_v p._n 21._o as_o if_o all_o writing_n be_v equal_o plain_a or_o equal_o obscure_a or_o if_o none_o free_a from_o therefore_o all_o equal_o liable_a to_o cavil_n again_o *_o that_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o willingness_n of_o all_o protestant_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o their_o unity_n as_o that_o of_o the_o readiness_n of_o all_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n will_v hold_v for_o their_o unity_n and_o this_o unity_n to_o be_v effect_v by_o the_o scripture_n he_o speak_v of_o as_o to_o those_o matter_n wherein_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n be_v controvert_v among_o christian_n for_o in_o such_o only_a it_o be_v that_o christian_n for_o their_o unity_n seek_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o they_o undertake_v to_o defend_v this_o that_o a_o live_a judge_n set_v up_o for_o the_o expound_v of_o the_o dubious_a place_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o sentence_n of_o which_o judge_n all_o be_v agree_v to_o assent_v yet_o be_v no_o more_o effective_a for_o end_v controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o unite_n party_n than_o the_o law_n themselves_o be_v without_o such_o judge_n mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n be_v 101._o be_v p_o 101._o your_o great_a argument_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o your_o party_n because_o whatever_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v good_a will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o our_o unity_n as_o you_o because_o all_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n which_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o side_n to_o be_v infallible_a if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v know_v what_o scripture_n determine_v but_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o what_o the_o church_n define_v it_o be_v easy_o answer_v that_o the_o event_n show_v it_o to_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o how_o many_o dispute_n be_v there_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n &_o c_o conclude_v thus_o so_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v set_v aside_o force_n and_o fraud_n which_o be_v excellent_a principle_n of_o christian_a unity_n we_o be_v upon_o as_o fair_a term_n of_o union_n as_o you_o be_v among_o yourselves_o where_o do_v he_o not_o say_v this_o in_o effect_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v and_o its_o authority_n grant_v infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v by_o its_o subject_n yet_o we_o can_v no_o more_o know_v what_o this_o church_n define_v suppose_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o england_n define_v concern_v transubstantiation_n st-invocation_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n than_o what_o scripture_n determine_v concern_v these_o point_n and_o that_o canon_n catechism_n etc._n etc._n authorize_v by_o a_o church_n can_v no_o further_o clear_v any_o point_n to_o we_o than_o scripture_n do_v former_o and_o that_o only_o the_o church_n be_v so_o unfortunate_a in_o her_o public_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o her_o exposition_n be_v no_o plain_o than_o the_o text_n and_o that_o only_a force_n or_o fraud_n unite_v her_o subject_n in_o their_o opinion_n and_o if_o so_o what_o fault_n have_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n make_v in_o its_o new_a definition_n if_o after_o these_o it_o seem_v 102._o seem_v stillingf_n p._n 102._o there_o be_v as_o much_o division_n and_o then_o liberty_n also_o of_o opinion_n as_o be_v before_o they_o why_o do_v they_o accuse_v its_o decree_n as_o plain_a enough_o but_o erroneous_a and_o not_o invalidate_v they_o rather_o as_o dubious_a and_o uncertain_a why_o dispute_v they_o not_o whether_o these_o we_o have_v now_o extant_a be_v its_o genuine_a act_n will_v it_o not_o be_v advantageous_a to_o the_o reform_a to_o show_v that_o this_o council_n make_v nothing_o against_o they_o in_o such_o unreasonable_a contest_v have_v mr._n chillingworth_n by_o invent_v many_o captious_a question_n to_o weaken_v church-authority_n engage_v his_o follower_n as_o if_o though_o catholic_n allow_v several_a thing_n in_o council_n obscure_o deliver_v some_o proceed_n in_o some_o thing_n unjust_a the_o legality_n of_o some_o council_n dispute_v &c_n &c_n yet_o there_o can_v not_o remain_v still_o enough_o clear_a and_o unquestionable_a both_o of_o council_n and_o their_o canon_n both_o *_o to_n establish_v the_o most_o illiterate_a subject_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o such_o as_o be_v think_v necessary_a faith_n who_o obligation_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v all_o thing_n define_v but_o all_o thing_n sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o to_o be_v so_o and_o *_o to_n overthrow_v the_o past_a reformation_n the_o three_o discourse_n chap._n i._n roman-catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o in_o these_o scripture_n agree_v on_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n in_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o necessary_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o the_o church-catholick_n be_v contra-distinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n §_o 4._o 4._o that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o this_o church_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 5._o §_o 1_o one_a both_o roman_a catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a certainty_n in_o the_o general_n tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n descend_v to_o the_o present_a age_n that_o the_o bible_n or_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o they_o be_v agree_v that_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v in_o these_o scripture_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n §_o 2_o in_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o credend_n or_o practical_n necessary_a for_o obtain_v salvation_n from_o which_o christian_n seem_v to_o be_v secure_v that_o in_o their_o approve_v §_o 3_o and_o conform_v to_o what_o be_v grant_v general_o to_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o church-catholick_n of_o any_o age_n whatsoever_o they_o shall_v incur_v no_o error_n or_o practice_n destructive_a of_o salvation_n whereas_o a_o hazard_n herein_o may_v be_v in_o their_o depart_n from_o the_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n or_o of_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o any_o age_n all_o or_o some_o of_o which_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n §_o 4_o 3_o
tradition_n namely_o that_o both_o of_o christian_n and_o mahometan_n than_o this_o that_o the_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n and_o yet_o this_o late_a carry_v with_o it_o a_o sufficient_a evidence_n and_o protestant_n themselves_o 2._o themselves_o see_v disc_n 2._o §._o 40._o n._n 2._o do_v both_o allow_v and_o practice_v several_a tradition_n as_o apostolical_a which_o yet_o have_v not_o the_o same_o fullness_n of_o tradition_n as_o the_o scripture_n nor_o indeed_o more_o than_o several_a of_o those_o point_n have_v whereof_o yet_o they_o deny_v a_o sufficient_a tradition_n 2._o again_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o small_a number_n of_o person_n if_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o miracle_n and_o other_o forename_a 121._o forename_a §._o 121._o motive_n of_o credit_n may_v be_v as_o or_o more_o credible_a than_o that_o of_o a_o great_a number_n not_o so_o qualify_v of_o several_a other_o tradition_n then_o what_o or_o how_o many_o in_o particular_a carry_v a_o sufficient_a fullness_n and_o evidence_n in_o they_o though_o all_o do_v not_o the_o same_o to_o beget_v a_o rational_a belief_n this_o after_o the_o church_n authority_n once_o establish_v by_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n private_a man_n may_v safe_o learn_v from_o the_o same_o church_n §_o 140_o but_o 8_o this_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n allow_v by_o protestant_n for_o scripture_n being_n god_n word_n and_o whatever_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o infallible_a seem_v unsufficient_a to_o assure_v to_o christian_n their_o faith_n in_o several_a article_n thereof_o because_o wherever_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o scripture_n be_v ambiguous_a it_o will_v still_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o such_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o true_a sense_n which_o only_o be_v god_n word_n or_o on_o the_o mistake_a sense_n which_o be_v not_o so_o next_o therefore_o catholic_n proceed_v far_a yet_o and_o both_o from_o the_o same_o scripture_n thus_o establish_v and_o from_o other_o constant_a tradition_n descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n for_o which_o see_v the_o proof_n give_v before_o disc_n 1._o §_o 7._o disc_n 2._o §_o 17._o &_o disc_n 3._o §_o 7._o 87._o etc._n etc._n do_v also_o gather_v and_o firm_o believe_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n or_o its_o governor_n for_o all_o necessary_n from_o a_o promise_v perpetual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o article_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o establish_v become_v to_o they_o a_o new_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n from_o which_o they_o do_v most_o firm_o believe_v and_o adhere_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n wherein_o the_o divine_a revelation_n either_o of_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n be_v not_o so_o perspicuous_a and_o clear_a to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o other_o of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o from_o this_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n believe_v all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o same_o church_n that_o be_v make_v in_o point_n where_o the_o true-sence_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o controversy_n and_o that_o be_v deliver_v by_o she_o as_o infallible_a and_o divine_a revelation_n be_v straight_o believe_v as_o such_o and_o among_o other_o these_o point_n also_o when_o the_o church_n define_v they_o in_o any_o doubtful_a case_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o what_o be_v tradition_n apostolical_a §_o 141_o thus_o if_o i_o first_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o church-infallibility_a from_o a_o clear_a apostolical_a tradition_n afterward_o from_o this_o church-infallibility_a define_n it_o i_o may_v become_v straight_o assure_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o 2_o if_o i_o receive_v and_o believe_v some_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n from_o clear_a apostolical_a tradition_n and_o out_o of_o this_o receive_a canon_n become_v assure_v of_o church-infallibility_a afterward_o from_o this_o infallibility_n define_v it_o i_o may_v certain_o come_v to_o know_v other_o part_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n that_o be_v more_o question_v again_o when_o i_o have_v already_o learned_a the_o church-infallibility_a from_o the_o scripture_n afterward_o i_o may_v become_v from_o its_o definition_n settle_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o those_o article_n of_o faith_n wherein_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n though_o believe_v by_o i_o before_o the_o church_n infallibility_n yet_o be_v ambiguous_a in_o their_o sense_n which_o sense_n proper_o and_o not_o the_o word_n be_v the_o divine_a revelation_n can_v beget_v no_o certain_a and_o firm_a faith_n in_o i_o until_o they_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o church_n infallible_o relate_v from_o god_n spirit_n assist_v it_o the_o traditive_a sense_n of_o they_o to_o i_o so_o that_o though_o i_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o so_o many_o point_n wherein_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a to_o i_o i_o receive_v the_o firmness_n of_o my_o faith_n in_o they_o not_o from_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o scripture_n expression_n of_o that_o which_o be_v god_n word_n but_o of_o the_o church_n expound_v they_o if_o then_o the_o scripture_n or_o tradition-apostolick_a be_v clear_a for_o this_o of_o church-infallibility_a than_o for_o some_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o person_n must_v necessary_o be_v concede_v to_o have_v a_o firm_a ground_n of_o his_o faith_n for_o so_o many_o point_n who_o believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a than_o another_o who_o believe_v only_a scripture_n so_o and_o such_o person_n also_o be_v preserve_v in_o a_o right_a faith_n in_o these_o point_n when_o the_o other_o not_o only_o may_v err_v in_o his_o faith_n but_o become_v heretical_a in_o his_o error_n by_o oppose_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o have_v the_o arrian_n and_o nestorian_n believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a this_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n firm_a and_o steadfast_a have_v preserve_v they_o from_o heresy_n in_o some_o other_o §_o 142_o here_o then_o appear_v a_o great_a firmness_n and_o stability_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o church-infallibility_a for_o many_o point_n wherein_o the_o protestant_n faith_n fluctuate_v and_o vary_v for_o whilst_o the_o protestant_n only_o extend_v and_o make_v use_v of_o the_o certitude_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n as_o to_o one_o of_o these_o point_n the_o delivery_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o acknowledge_v no_o further_a certitude_n of_o the_o same_o church-tradition_n write_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a for_o the_o other_o point_n the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n divine_o assist_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o discern_a of_o true_a tradition_n and_o again_o while_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o scripture_n in_o many_o weighty_a point_n as_o experience_n show_v have_v be_v and_o be_v controvert_v the_o protestant_a here_o for_o so_o many_o of_o these_o point_n as_o be_v upon_o such_o misinterpretation_n of_o scripture_n define_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o definition_n of_o which_o church_n assist_v as_o he_o believe_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o catholic_n remain_v secure_a have_v no_o rational_a anchor_n nor_o ground_n of_o confidence_n in_o his_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o rest_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n and_o truth_n of_o tradition_n and_o that_o judgement_n of_o his_o too_o for_o several_a point_n of_o his_o faith_n go_v against_o the_o judgement_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o against_o his_o superior_n where_o the_o last_o refuge_n protestant_n betake_v themselves_o to_o ordinary_o be_v this_o that_o they_o say_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o ambiguous_a but_o clear_a enough_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o that_o in_o point_n not_o necessary_a there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o a_o right_a faith_n or_o of_o any_o decision_n of_o controversy_n and_o so_o no_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n or_o any_o unerring_a guide_n save_v scripture_n which_o defence_n have_v be_v examine_v in_o disc_n 2._o §_o 38._o etc._n etc._n §_o 143_o the_o sum_n of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v here_o be_v this_o 1_o i_o take_v it_o as_o a_o principle_n agree_v on_o that_o a_o divine_a be_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o quatenus_fw-la divine_a ultimate_o resolve_v itself_o into_o divine_a revelation_n §_o 144_o 2_o there_o must_v be_v some_o particular_a ultimate_a divine_a revelation_n assign_v by_o every_o christian_a which_o may_v be_v not_o to_o all_o the_o same_o but_o to_o some_o one_o to_o some_o another_o beyond_o which_o he_o can_v resolve_v his_o divine_a faith_n no_o further_o and_o for_o prove_v or_o confirm_v which_o revelation_n he_o can_v produce_v no_o other_o divine_a revelation_n but_o there_o must_v end_v unless_o a_o process_n be_v make_v in_o infinitum_fw-la or_o a_o run_v
divine_a evidence_n i_o adhere_v to_o it_o i_o answer_v from_o the_o internal_a operation_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o spirit_n cause_v a_o most_o firm_a fiducial_a assent_n in_o i_o that_o these_o scripture_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o god_n word_n by_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o the_o church_n pretend_v no_o new_a revelation_n concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n i._n e._n be_v deliver_v by_o those_o divine_o preserve_v from_o any_o fallibility_n therein_o neither_o do_v here_o again_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n appear_v any_o circle_n at_o all_o and_o if_o it_o be_v further_o ask_v what_o rational_a ground_n i_o have_v to_o think_v this_o be_v a_o persuasion_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o some_o evil_n spirit_n or_o this_o indeed_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o i_o be_o tell_v be_v so_o here_o i_o urge_v for_o these_o the_o prudential_a motive_n §_o 151_o again_o suppose_v i_o be_v ask_v concern_v some_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n though_o the_o same_o article_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o i_o clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n why_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o do_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v perpetual_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o be_v infallible_a for_o ever_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n define_v by_o she_o have_v deliver_v it_o to_o i_o as_o such_o if_o again_o why_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o believe_v these_o scripture_n in_o general_n or_o such_o a_o sense_n of_o those_o text_n in_o particular_a which_o be_v pretend_v to_o reveal_v the_o church_n infallibility_n to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n i_o answer_v as_o before_o because_o apostolical_a tradition_n have_v deliver_v they_o to_o be_v so_o which_o apostolical_a tradition_n relate_v or_o convey_v to_o i_o by_o the_o church_n i_o believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n by_o the_o internal_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n without_o have_v at_o all_o any_o further_a divine_a revelation_n from_o which_o i_o shall_v believe_v this_o revelation_n to_o be_v divine_a or_o if_o any_o will_v go_v one_o step_n further_o and_o prove_v this_o apostolical_a tradition_n also_o divine_a from_o the_o divine_a work_n the_o apostle_n do_v miracle_n yet_o here_o he_o must_v conclude_v neither_o have_v we_o any_o further_a divine_a word_n or_o work_v to_o confirm_v to_o we_o their_o do_v such_o divine_a work_n but_o then_o if_o i_o be_v ask_v further_o whether_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n the_o church_n relation_n concern_v such_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o miracle_n to_o be_v infallible_a i_o exclude_v now_o this_o supposition_n which_o in_o the_o order_n of_o these_o question_n be_v in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v exclude_v viz._n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o exclude_v this_o answer_n that_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n relation_n infallible_a with_o a_o divine_a faith_n from_o the_o testimony_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v to_o the_o church_n here_o i_o answer_v no_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n this_o relation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a for_o divine_a faith_n build_v upon_o nothing_o but_o divine_a revelation_n and_o if_o i_o be_v to_o bring_v another_o divine_a revelation_n still_o to_o support_v my_o faith_n of_o the_o former_a so_o must_v i_o also_o bring_v yet_o a_o further_a divine_a revelation_n for_o this_o my_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o here_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la but_o in_o this_o place_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n tradition_n or_o testimony_n be_v take_v here_o in_o the_o latter_a sense_n mention_v before_o §_o 126_o infallible_a only_o with_o a_o humane_a and_o acquisite_a faith_n build_v on_o the_o forename_a prudential_a motive_n and_o the_o ultimate_a resolution_n here_o of_o my_o divine_a faith_n be_v into_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o their_o miracle_n not_o the_o church-tradition_n or_o her_o relation_n that_o convey_v to_o i_o the_o apostolical_a with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o do_v believe_v the_o apostolical_a tradition_n relate_v by_o the_o church_n but_o i_o do_v believe_v the_o church_n she_o true_o or_o infallible_o i_o mean_v not_o as_o infallible_o here_o relate_v to_o the_o divine_a promise_n but_o to_o the_o prudential_a motive_n relate_v this_o apostolical_a tradition_n with_o a_o acquire_v or_o rational_a faith_n §_o 152_o the_o natural_a order_n of_o a_o christian_n belief_n then_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o 1_o the_o divine_a revelation_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o world_n by_o certain_a person_n choose_v by_o god_n and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o mission_n from_o he_o do_v miracle_n which_o person_n also_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o ordain_v other_o to_o divulge_v and_o perpetuate_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o same_o revelation_n to_o mankind_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o chief_a body_n of_o which_o these_o person_n also_o draw_v up_o and_o deliver_v in_o writing_n of_o which_o divine_a revelation_n deliver_v by_o they_o this_o be_v one_o that_o these_o their_o successor_n shall_v for_o ever_o be_v so_o far_o assist_v by_o god_n holy_a spirit_n as_o never_o to_o err_v in_o teach_v all_o truth_n or_o if_o you_o will_v in_o true_o relate_v all_o divine_a revelation_n any_o way_n necessary_a to_o man_n salvation_n which_o divine_a revelation_n also_o concern_v themselves_o be_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v among_o the_o rest_n to_o all_o posterity_n by_o these_o very_a successor_n of_o who_o it_o be_v speak_v these_o thing_n thus_o convey_v those_o to_o who_o these_o revelation_n be_v make_v do_v 1._o with_o a_o rational_a and_o acquisite_a faith_n believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o these_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v render_v most_o credible_a to_o they_o by_o all_o those_o prudential_a motive_n mention_v before_o §_o 121._o their_o multitude_n their_o sanctity_n their_o martyrdom_n in_o testimony_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n 2._o but_o then_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o thing_n relate_v which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v reveal_v and_o deliver_v first_o by_o god_n to_o person_n assist_v with_o most_o infallible_a miracle_n they_o do_v believe_v these_o thing_n relate_v after_o the_o manner_n express_v before_o §_o 134._o with_o yet_o a_o high_a and_o a_o divine_a faith_n wrought_v in_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o rest_v itself_o not_o on_o the_o veracity_n of_o these_o secondary_a relator_n but_o on_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n himself_o from_o who_o these_o revelation_n be_v say_v original_o to_o come_v yet_o the_o rational_a introductive_a to_o all_o this_o faith_n be_v the_o veracity_n of_o those_o who_o immediate_o convey_v the_o tradition_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o they_o 3._o then_o further_a one_o of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n which_o the_o church_n or_o these_o successor_n do_v deliver_v to_o christian_n as_o i_o say_v be_v this_o that_o these_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o deliver_v their_o doctrine_n to_o we_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o infallible_a in_o deliver_v all_o necessary_n from_o this_o revelation_n i_o say_v deliver_v by_o they_o christian_n also_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o this_o church_n or_o of_o these_o successor_n not_o by_o a_o rational_a faith_n only_o ground_v on_o the_o former_a motive_n of_o credibility_n but_o by_o a_o divine_a faith_n because_o ground_v on_o a_o divine_a revelation_n and_o consequent_o believe_v also_o all_o thing_n deliver_v by_o these_o person_n as_o necessary_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n on_o the_o same_o account_n §_o 153_o after_o all_o this_o to_o reflect_v now_o a_o little_a on_o the_o objection_n we_o see_v 1_o that_o no_o circle_n be_v make_v in_o a_o catholic_n ground_n or_o resolution_n of_o faith_n divine_a or_o acquisite_a but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o ultimate_a revelation_n divine_a though_o this_o not_o necessary_a to_o be_v always_o the_o same_o whereon_o divine_a faith_n rest_v and_o into_o which_o and_o no_o humane_a motive_n it_o resolve_v itself_o and_o a_o inward_a operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o the_o firmness_n of_o adherence_n of_o this_o faith_n to_o such_o revelation_n in_o particular_a as_o divine_v be_v effect_v and_o again_o that_o these_o be_v motive_n from_o humane_a authority_n sufficient_o credible_a or_o also_o moral_o infallible_a or_o as_o some_o of_o late_o express_v themselves_o not-possibly-fallible_a which_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v whenas_o it_o be_v in_o the_o natural_a power_n of_o all_o man_n even_o take_v collective_o abstract_v here_o from_o any_o divine_a superintendency_n to_o tell_v a_o lie_n none_o have_v reason_n to_o envy_v any_o advance_n of_o the_o evidence_n of_o christian_a religion_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o
infallible_a yet_o how_o can_v any_o know_v infallible_o which_o be_v lawful_a general_n council_n because_o of_o the_o many_o condition_n require_v to_o make_v they_o such_o in_o some_o one_o of_o which_o he_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o any_o one_o of_o they_o hat_n not_o fail_v §_o 114._o chap._n 10._o 15._o q._n last_o catholic_n pretend_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o divine_a faith_n necessary_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v ask_v upon_o what_o ground_n a_o christian_a by_o a_o divine_a faith_n believe_v all_o those_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o be_v define_v by_o particular_a council_n where_o if_o say_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o former_a manner_n i._n e._n by_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a the_o question_n return_v whence_o this_o testimony_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n infallible_a without_o make_v a_o circle_n in_o prove_v this_o present_a church_n to_o be_v so_o infallible_a from_o god_n word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a and_o then_o again_o prove_v infallible_o such_o to_o have_v be_v god_n word_n from_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n nor_o can_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o to_o ground_v divine_a faith_n upon_o it_o from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n or_o from_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o only_o from_o a_o divine_a revelation_n i._n e._n from_o god_n word_n because_o divine_a faith_n can_v never_o resolve_v itself_o into_o any_o ground_n that_o be_v not_o divine_a revelation_n §_o 120._o to_o which_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o object_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o in_o itself_o infallible_a §_o 123._o 2._o that_o divine_a faith_n always_o ultimate_o resolve_v itself_o into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o into_o some_o one_o wherein_o it_o ultimate_o rest_v without_o a_o process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la or_o turn_v in_o a_o circle_n §_o 124._o n._n 1._o 132._o 143_o 144._o 3._o that_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o wrought_v in_o christian_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n §_o 124._o n._n 2._o 4._o that_o from_o the_o operation_n of_o this_o h._n spirit_n may_v be_v produce_v in_o christian_n a_o sufficient_a certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n whatever_o uncertainty_n be_v in_o the_o extrinsical_a proponent_a thereof_o §_o 125._o 5._o that_o church-tradition_n in_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o divine_a revelation_n be_v only_o the_o introductive_a not_o the_o object_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n §_o 126._o 6._o that_o there_o in_o no_o absolute_a need_n either_o of_o it_o or_o any_o other_o extrinsical_a infallible_a introductive_a or_o proponent_n for_o a_o christian_n be_v attain_n a_o divine_a faith_n §_o 127._o 7._o yet_o that_o there_o be_v those_o morally-certain_a ground_n produceable_a for_o this_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o no_o other_o religion_n beside_o the_o christian_a nor_o in_o christianity_n no_o other_o sect_n or_o seduce_v private_a spirit_n can_v pretend_v to_o §_o 135._o that_o a_o rational_a certainty_n or_o morally-infallible_a ground_n of_o a_o christian_n faith_n thus_o far_o at_o least_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o whatever_o be_v contain_v therein_o infallible_a be_v affirm_v by_o all_o §_o 136._o 8._o but_o further_o that_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n as_o perpetual_o assist_v by_o the_o h._n ghost_n for_o all_o necessary_n wherein_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o verity_n of_o tradition_n apostolical_a be_v question_v and_o dispute_v be_v believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o which_o infallibility_n of_o these_o church-guide_n clear_o reveal_v to_o they_o in_o scripture_n and_o by_o tradition_n apostolical_a they_o retain_v a_o firm_a faith_n of_o all_o those_o point_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n as_o to_o all_o man_n so_o clear_o reveal_v whilst_o other_o deny_v the_o infallibility_n of_o these_o church-guide_n and_o only_o allow_v that_o of_o scripture_n miscarry_v in_o their_o faith_n concern_v some_o of_o the_o other_o point_n or_o can_v have_v no_o firm_a ground_n of_o their_o believe_v they_o §_o 140._o show_v from_o the_o precedent_n that_o no_o circle_n be_v make_v in_o the_o roman_a catholick_n resolve_v either_o of_o a_o divine_a and_o infuse_v or_o acquisite_a and_o humane_a faith_n §_o 143._o etc._n etc._n chap._n 11._o a_o supplement_n to_o the_o four_o chap._n 26_o §_o wherein_o be_v show_v a_o consent_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o modern_a eastern_a church_n with_o the_o occidental_a in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o present_a controversy_n 1._o transubstantiation_n §_o 158._o n._n 2._o 177._o 2._o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n §_o 159._o 177._o 3._o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n §_o 160._o n._n 1._o 177._o 4._o invocation_n of_o saint_n §_o 161._o 5._o prayer_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a depart_v as_o betterable_a thereby_o in_o their_o present_a condition_n §_o 162._o 6._o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n or_o of_o the_o symbol_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n only_o intinct_a §_o 163.178_o 7._o a_o relative_n veneration_n of_o image_n or_o picture_n §_o ibid._n 8._o monastic_a vow_n and_o marriage_n deny_v the_o clergy_n after_o the_o take_n of_o holy_a order_n §_o 164._o and_o §_o 179._o n._n 1._o 9_o auricular_a or_o sacramental_a confession_n §_o 165.179_o n._n 2._o the_o reply_v make_v hereto_o by_o protestant_n consider_v §_o 182._o etc._n etc._n the_o four_o discourse_n contain_v the_o socinian_o apology_n for_o the_o be_v believe_v and_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o former_a church-definition_n and_o present_a church-authority_n upon_o the_o protestant-ground_n divide_v into_o five_o conference_n the_o first_o conf._n of_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 2._o the_o second_o conf._n of_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o as_o this_o can_v just_o oblige_v §_o 13_o the_o three_o conf._n nor_o contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n the_o just_a condition_n thereof_o observe_v §_o 18._o the_o four_o conf._n of_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n §_o 23._o the_o five_o conf._n nor_o of_o schism_n §_o 28._o the_o first_o discourse_n relate_v and_o consider_v the_o vary_v judgement_n of_o learned_a protestant_n concern_v the_o ecclesiastical_a guide_n chap._n i._n the_o church_n catholic_n grant_v by_o all_o in_o some_o sense_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o for_o ever_o §_o 1._o of_o protestant_a divine_n i._o some_o grant_v the_o church_n catholic_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n but_o not_o as_o a_o guide_n §_o 3._o r._n thatthe_a divine_a promise_n of_o indefectibility_n or_o not_o err_v in_o necessary_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n catholic_n as_o a_o guide_n or_o to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n §_o 6._o §_o 1_o first_o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o any_o age_n whatever_o be_v unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o fundamental_o the_o church_n catholic_n grant_v by_o all_o in_o some_o sense_n unerrable_a for_o ever_o in_o fundamental_o or_o absolute_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n both_o by_o roman-catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v grant_v for_o otherwise_o in_o some_o age_n there_o will_v be_v no_o church_n catholic_n error_n in_o such_o fundamental_o destroy_v the_o very_a be_v of_o a_o church_n §_o 2_o but_o when_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n it_o be_v by_o catholic_n ascend_v to_o the_o governor_n or_o guide_n thereof_o to_o who_o this_o church_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o lord_n depart_v hence_o that_o they_o be_v also_o by_o our_o lord_n promise_v and_o assistance_n unerrable_a in_o their_o decree_n they_o at_o least_o in_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n of_o they_o such_o as_o the_o time_n wherein_o such_o council_n be_v assemble_v do_v permit_v unerrable_a §_o 3_o at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o to_o necessary_n here_o the_o protestant_n make_v a_o stop_n guide_n 1._o 1._o some_o protestant-divines_a grant_v the_o church_n catholic_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n but_o not_o as_o a_o guide_n and_o seem_v to_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o in_o 12_o their_o judgement_n mr._n ch_n llingworth_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o f._n knot_n and_o after_o he_o dr._n hammond_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o exception_n make_v against_o the_o lord_n falkland_n discourse_n of_o infallibility_n with_o their_o follower_n in_o this_o point_n among_o who_o i_o number_v the_o two_o late_a replier_n 20._o replier_n see_v mr._n stillingf_n p._n 154_o 251_o 252_o 514_o 517.55_o whitby_n c._n
be_v just_a that_o either_o of_o these_o shall_v be_v the_o judge_n therefore_o that_o the_o divine_n on_o one_o part_n and_o on_o the_o other_o argue_v for_o their_o own_o tenant_n there_o may_v be_v judge_n i._n e._n laic_n indifferent_o choose_v on_o both_o side_n that_o be_v in_o a_o equal_a number_n to_o take_v knowledge_n of_o the_o controversy_n and_o see_v mr._n stillingfleet_n motion_v some_o such_o thing_n p._n 479._o and_n this_v indeed_o be_v the_o only_a way_n they_o have_v in_o refer_v themselves_o to_o judgement_n not_o to_o be_v cast_v if_o the_o judge_n of_o their_o own_o side_n at_o least_o will_v be_v true_a to_o they_o but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v as_o to_o a_o due_a proportion_n of_o national_a vote_n this_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v deficient_a therein_o whilst_o those_o nation_n who_o by_o their_o own_o if_o by_o any_o one_o fault_n have_v few_o vote_n in_o the_o council_n in_o pass_v the_o decree_n yet_o be_v as_o plenary_a and_o numerous_a as_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o acceptation_n of_o they_o after_o it_o and_o be_v now_o anew_o these_o thing_n put_v to_o a_o equal_a vote_n of_o the_o western_a nation_n i_o see_v not_o from_o what_o the_o protestant_n may_v reasonable_o expect_v suppose_v the_o great_a liberty_n in_o these_o vote_n that_o be_v possible_a a_o issue_n diverse_a from_o the_o former_a for_o have_v they_o any_o new_a thing_n to_o propose_v in_o their_o oration_n and_o speech_n before_o such_o a_o meeting_n that_o they_o have_v not_o already_o say_v in_o their_o write_n and_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o occidental_a clergy_n and_o the_o learned_a that_o peruse_v they_o of_o a_o different_a judgement_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o other_o have_v as_o great_a presumption_n upon_o a_o equal_a hear_n to_o pcevail_v for_o reduce_v some_o of_o the_o protestant_a party_n by_o scripture_n explicate_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n council_n and_o father_n as_o the_o protestant_n of_o gain_v some_o of_o the_o other_o by_o scripture_n alone_o or_o if_o any_o will_v say_v that_o ancient_a tradition_n council_n or_o father_n be_v on_o the_o protestant_a side_n how_o come_v this_o to_o be_v one_o of_o their_o article_n propose_v to_o the_o council_n that_o all_o humane_a authority_n be_v exclude_v the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o the_o council_n and_o the_o trent_n safe-conauct_a run_v thus_o quod_fw-la causae_fw-la controversae_fw-la secundum_fw-la sanctam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la probata_fw-la concilia_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la authoritates_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consensum_fw-la tractentur_fw-la why_o desire_v they_o a_o free_a safe_a conduct_n after_o the_o form_n of_o that_o of_o basil_n to_o the_o bohemian_o which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v say_v soave_fw-it 344._o soave_fw-it p._n 344._o they_o have_v obtain_v one_o great_a point_n that_o be_v that_o the_o controversy_n shall_v be_v decide_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n this_o from_o §_o 36._o n._n 1._o i_o have_v say_v occasional_o to_o bishop_n bramhal_n so_o frequent_a free_a offer_n of_o submission_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n or_o of_o free_a general_n or_o also_o occidental_a council_n §_o 37_o next_o come_v we_o to_o archbishop_n lawd_n he_o §_o 31._o p._n 318._o affirm_v that_o lawd_n of_o archbish_n lawd_n the_o visible_a church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n teach_v that_o unchanged_a faith_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o point_v fundamental_a doctor_n white_a say_v he_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v this_o and_o §_o 21._o p._n 140._o it_o be_v not_o possible_a the_o catholic_n church_n i._n e._n of_o any_o one_o age_n shall_v teach_v he_o speak_v therefore_o of_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o in_o such_o age_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o §_o 25._o n._n 4._o if_o we_o speak_v of_o plain_a and_o easy_a scripture_n the_o whole_a church_n can_v at_o any_o time_n be_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o if_o a._n c._n mean_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v universal_o err_v in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n he_o fight_v against_o no_o adversary_n that_o i_o know_v but_o his_o own_o fiction_n for_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n grant_v it_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n as_o teach_v such_o point_n as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o context_n ibid._n p._n 139._o because_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v universal_o err_v in_o absolute_o fundamental_a doctrine_n therefore_o it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o make_v a_o schism_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o she_o may_v err_v indeed_o in_o superstruction_n and_o deduction_n and_o other_o by-and_a unnecessary_a truth_n from_o her_o curiosity_n or_o other_o weakness_n but_o if_o she_o can_v err_v either_o by_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o foundation_n i._n e._n by_o infidelity_n or_o by_o heretical_a error_n in_o it_o she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o holy_a for_o no_o assembly_n of_o heretic_n can_v be_v holy_a and_o so_o that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v go_v now_o this_o holiness_n say_v he_o error_n of_o a_o mean_a allay_n take_v not_o away_o from_o the_o church_n likewise_o §_o 33._o n._n 4._o p._n 256._o the_o same_o archbishop_n say_v yet_o more_o clear_o that_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n militant_a have_v a_o absolute_a infallibility_n in_o the_o prime_a foundation_n of_o faith_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o any_o thing_n sway_n and_o wrench_v the_o general_n council_n he_o must_v mean_v here_o in_o non-necessaries_a &_o such_o council_n as_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v for_o a_o general_n council_n universal_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v unerrable_a in_o necessary_n because_o the_o church_n catholic_n he_o say_v be_v so_o upon_o evidence_n find_v in_o express_a scripture_n or_o demonstration_n of_o this_o miscarriage_n have_v power_n to_o represent_v herself_o in_o another_o body_n or_o general_n council_n and_o to_o take_v order_n for_o what_o be_v amiss_o either_o practise_v or_o conclude_v in_o the_o former_a and_o to_o define_v against_o it_o p._n 257._o and_o afterward_o p._n 258._o that_o thus_o though_o the_o mother-church_n provincial_a or_o national_a may_v err_v yet_o if_o the_o grandmother_n the_o whole_a universal_a church_n he_o mean_v in_o a_o general_a council_n universal_o accept_a can_v err_v in_o these_o necessary_a thing_n all_o remain_v safe_a and_o all_o occasion_n of_o disobedience_n take_v from_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o church_n err_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o again_o §_o 38._o n._n 14._o he_o say_v that_o a_o general_n council_n de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v then_o infallible_a and_o for_o this_o admittance_n or_o confirmation_n of_o it_o by_o the_o church_n he_o grant_v 165._o grant_v §._o 26._o p._n 165._o that_o no_o confirmation_n be_v needful_a to_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v and_o so_o proceed_v but_o only_o that_o after_o it_o be_v end_v the_o whole_a church_n admit_v it_o though_o never_o so_o tacit_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o in_o brief_a be_v this_o one_a that_o a_o general_n council_n or_o indeed_o any_o council_n whatever_o less_o than_o general_n accept_v or_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a because_o he_o hold_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v so_o 2_o consequent_o that_o obedience_n and_o this_o of_o assent_n be_v due_a to_o such_o council_n or_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n that_o be_v deliver_v by_o this_o council_n as_o to_o necessary_n of_o assent_n i_o say_v to_o it_o because_o infallible_a 3_o that_o all_o be_v to_o acquiesce_v none_o presume_v to_o urge_v or_o credit_v any_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n or_o demonstration_n against_o such_o a_o judgement_n because_o infallible_a 4_o that_o it_o be_v schism_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o a_o council_n because_o the_o archbishop_n hold_v all_o departure_n of_o any_o member_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n to_o be_v so_o 139._o so_o §._o 21._o p._n 139._o §_o 38_o now_o thus_o much_o be_v profess_v by_o the_o archbishop_n if_o he_o will_v also_o allow_v the_o church_n where_o reply_v where_o or_o her_o council_n and_o not_o private_a man_n to_o judge_v what_o definition_n be_v make_v in_o matter_n necessary_a and_o 2_o will_v grant_v a_o acceptation_n of_o such_o council_n by_o a_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n diffusive_a i_o mean_v necessary_a concern_v what_o acceptation_n of_o council_n by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a be_v only_o necessary_a of_o those_o
according_o both_o in_o council_n their_o define_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o church_n acceptation_n of_o their_o decree_n the_o much_o major_a part_n must_v conclude_v the_o whole_a and_o the_o oppose_a of_o their_o definition_n also_o be_v heresy_n and_o separation_n from_o their_o communion_n schism_n if_o a_o opposition_n to_o or_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a be_v so_o §_o 27._o n._n 4_o 14._o as_o for_o the_o protestant_a mark_n whereby_o in_o any_o division_n to_o know_v these_o true_a guide_n viz._n a_o right_a teach_n of_o god_n word_n and_o a_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o these_o be_v thing_n to_o be_v learn_v from_o these_o true_a guide_n first_o know_v §_o 28_o chap._n 4._o a_o application_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n in_o a_o search_n which_o of_o the_o opposite_a present_a church_n or_o of_o the_o dissent_v ecclesiastical_a governor_n thereof_o be_v our_o true_a guide_n §_o 30._o motive_n persuade_v that_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o other_o western_a church_n unite_v with_o it_o and_o with_o the_o head_n thereof_o s._n peter_n successor_n be_v this_o true_a guide_n 1_o their_o be_v the_o very_a same_o body_n with_o that_o which_o protestant_n grant_v be_v 150_o year_n ago_o the_o christian_n be_v true_a guide_n and_o the_o other_o body_n confess_v themselves_o in_o external_a communion_n depart_v from_o it_o §_o 33._o 2_o their_o be_v that_o body_n to_o which_o if_o we_o follow_v the_o former_a rule_n recite_v prop._n 12._o we_o ought_v to_o submit_v §_o 35._o 3_o their_o be_v that_o body_n that_o own_v and_o adhere_v to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o all_o the_o former_a council_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o precede_a age_n have_v receive_v as_o general_n or_o oblige_v as_o well_o those_o council_n since_o as_o those_o before_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o century_n which_o late_a the_o other_o party_n reject_v §_o 37._o chap._n 5._o the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_a or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v 1._o that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non-necessaries_a needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o 2._o that_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n rule_n or_o guide_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o save_o the_o scripture_n §_o 39_o n_o 1._o not_o any_o certain_a live_a guide_n 1_o which_o be_v infallible_a as_o their_o guide_n the_o scripture_n be_v §_o 39_o n._n 2._o 2_o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a guide_n or_o know_v their_o deeree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3_o from_o who_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o learn_v necessary_n or_o tell_v they_o what_o church_n or_o party_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v to_o in_o any_o schism_n make_v in_o which_o infallible_a guide_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a concernment_n the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v be_v silent_a ibid._n reply_n 1._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a it_o be_v reply_v then_o i._o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1._o that_o some_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a as_o those_o controversy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o deity_n and_o humanity_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n etc._n etc._n §_o 43._o 2._o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n still_o with_o the_o more_o security_n may_v christian_n rely_v for_o they_o on_o the_o church_n judgement_n from_o which_o also_o they_o receive_v these_o scripture_n §_o 41._o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o man_n clear_o §_o 41._o 1._o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v leave_v this_o one_o point_n clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n of_o they_o follow_v the_o direction_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o exposition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o these_o guide_n §_o 41._o 2._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n all_o such_o necessary_a truth_n to_o be_v successive_o communicate_v by_o they_o to_o his_o people_n §_o 44._o 3._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n the_o sense_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v in_o point_n necessary_a any_o way_n obscure_a ibid._n 4._o sufficient_a if_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v clear_o enough_o reveal_v all_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o these_o church_n guide_n use_v due_a mean_n though_o he_o have_v not_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o unlearned_a for_o from_o those_o these_o may_v learn_v they_o §_o 45._o ii_o concern_v a_o live_a guide_n 1._o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n especial_o several_a text_n compare_v be_v ambiguous_a and_o in_o controversy_n the_o christian_n guide_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n can_v be_v the_o scripture_n but_o either_o the_o church_n or_o their_o own_o judgement_n §_o 46._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v direct_v christian_n to_o what_o guide_n they_o be_v to_o repair_v §_o 46._o n._n 2._o or_o to_o what_o church-prelate_n or_o party_n in_o any_o schism_n christian_n for_o ever_o ought_v to_o adhere_v §_o 47._o n._n 2._o 3._o yet_o that_o god_n have_v give_v christian_n a_o sufficient_a direction_n herein_o in_o his_o leave_v a_o due_a subordination_n among_o these_o governor_n whereby_o the_o inferior_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o superior_a and_o a_o part_n unto_o the_o whole_a §_o 47._o n._n 3._o and_o that_o christian_n may_v more_o clear_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n controvert_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o the_o second_o discourse_n chap._n i._n protestant_n assent_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o present_a a_o one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o the_o present_a pastor_n and_o governor_n thereof_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v controversy_n §_o 2._o 3._o and_o that_o their_o governor_n shall_v never_o err_v or_o misguide_a christian_n at_o least_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n §_o 3._o 4._o and_o that_o they_o with_o the_o church_n govern_v by_o they_o do_v stand_v always_o distinct_a from_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a congregation_n §_o 5._o §_o 1_o one_a that_o there_o be_v a_o one_o holy_a catholic_n apostolic_a church_n in_o this_o age_n and_o at_o this_o present_a time_n all_o 1_o proposition_n 1_o i_o suppose_v grant_v §_o 2_o 2_o that_o this_o present_a church_n that_o be_v in_o its_o pastor_n 2._o prop._n 2._o and_o governor_n be_v appoint_v for_o a_o guide_n to_o christian_n and_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v controversy_n be_v unquestioned_a also_o among_o several_a learned_a protestant_n etc._n protestant_n see_v disc_n 1._o §._o 3â_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o think_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o 20_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o article_n say_v the_o church_n have_v authority_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o what_o can_v it_o mean_v but_o for_o decide_v they_o or_o who_o decide_v they_o but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n §_o 3_o 3_o that_o these_o present_a governor_n in_o this_o present_a age_n either_o *_o collectively_o take_v as_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o council_n 3._o prop._n 3._o the_o decree_n whereof_o be_v universal_o accept_v by_o those_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n diffusive_a that_o be_v absent_a from_o it_o or_o *_o disjunctive_o take_v for_o some_o visible_a society_n or_o other_o of_o they_o at_o least_o sometime_o lesser_o sometime_o great_a shall_v never_o misguide_v christian_n at_o least_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n be_v also_o acknowledge_v by_o learned_a protestant_n etc._n protestant_n see_v disc_n 1._o §._o 25._o etc._n etc._n and_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o clear_a sense_n of_o the_o 19_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o affirm_v '_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a man_n 23._o man_n see_v art_n
only_a the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o four_o session_n come_v in_o and_o submit_v not_o only_o for_o their_o silence_n that_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n but_o assent_n but_o after_o these_o there_o be_v 11_o egyptian_a bishop_n i._n e._n all_o that_o be_v present_a from_o the_o patriarchy_n of_o alexandria_n how_o orthodox_n i_o can_v say_v that_o refuse_v still_o to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o council_n decree_n allege_v the_o fear_n of_o a_o persecution_n upon_o their_o return_n into_o egypt_n from_o their_o brethren_n at_o home_n these_o at_o home_n it_o seem_v be_v also_o of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n to_o the_o council_n yet_o the_o council_n both_o establish_v their_o decree_n without_o they_o and_o require_v upon_o excommunication_n their_o submission_n to_o it_o and_o to_o it_o put_v into_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n after_o this_o council_n end_v timotheus_n the_o usurp_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n after_o proterius_n who_o be_v place_v there_o by_o the_o council_n slain_z and_o his_o adherent_n continue_v still_o to_o profess_v dioscorism_n or_o a_o mitigate_v eutychianism_n condemn_v the_o act_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o much_o solicit_v the_o emperor_n by_o letter_n to_o call_v a_o new_a council_n and_o beside_o these_o a_o very_a great_a faction_n in_o palestine_n do_v the_o same_o who_o follower_n also_o continue_v the_o same_o division_n to_o this_o day_n not_o only_o the_o egyptian_n but_o the_o ethiopian_n or_o abyssins_n armenian_n jacobite_v of_o syria_n give_v to_o the_o adherent_n of_o the_o council_n in_o those_o part_n the_o name_n of_o melchites_n or_o royalist_n because_o they_o pretend_v the_o corruption_n of_o this_o council_n by_o the_o emperor_n faction_n yet_o the_o own_n of_o this_o council_n by_o s._n peter_n chair_n and_o the_o acceptation_n thereof_o by_o much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v and_o still_o be_v not_o doubt_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ratification_n of_o its_o act_n notwithstanding_o this_o storm_n in_o the_o patriarchy_n of_o alexandria_n against_o this_o four_o general_n council_n much_o worse_a than_o that_o of_o antioch_n against_o the_o three_o before_o the_o seven_o general_n council_n the_o second_o nicene_n 5_o §._o 25._o n._n 5_o a_o question_n be_v on_o foot_n concern_v the_o lawful_a use_n and_o also_o relative_a veneration_n of_o image_n a_o council_n assemble_v of_o above_o a_o hundred_o bishop_n under_o constantinus_n copronymus_n though_o indeed_o none_o of_o the_o patriarch_n join_v with_o they_o define_v it_o negative_o and_o for_o make_v good_a their_o tradition_n for_o this_o produce_v several_a place_n out_o of_o the_o father_n particular_o out_o of_o epiphanius_n naziaâz_n chrysostom_n athanasius_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n and_o other_o see_v 2._o conc._n nic._n act._n 6._o tom._n 5._o yet_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o ghurch_n recover_v her_o liberty_n by_o the_o death_n of_o this_o emperor_n it_o in_o a_o full_a body_n the_o patriarch_n also_o present_a notwithstanding_o such_o a_o party_n prevent_v they_o declare_v their_o faith_n contrary_a with_o a_o anathema_n to_o all_o dissenter_n from_o their_o decree_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n the_o oriental_a arrian_n bishop_n 6._o §._o 26._o n._n 6._o about_o 70._o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o council_n to_o philippopolis_n because_o it_o consist_v of_o above_o 300_o western_a bishop_n beside_o they_o they_o see_v their_o number_n too_o small_a to_o invalidate_v the_o act_n of_o a_o party_n so_o much_o great_a though_o indeed_o be_v condemn_v already_o for_o heretic_n by_o the_o nicene_n council_n they_o can_v have_v no_o just_a vote_n in_o any_o follow_v before_o all_o these_o council_n a_o great_a question_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n about_o the_o validity_n of_o heretic_n baptism_n and_o whether_o the_o tradition_n common_o practise_v of_o non-rebaptizing_a those_o convert_v from_o heresy_n though_o firmilian_a seem_v to_o plead_v also_o a_o contrary_a tradition_n in_o those_o part_n where_o he_o live_v cypr._n live_v ep_v 73._o ad_fw-la cypr._n caeterum_fw-la nos_fw-la say_v he_o veritati_fw-la &_o consuetudinem_fw-la jungimus_fw-la &_o consuetudini_fw-la romanorum_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la sed_fw-la veritatis_fw-la opponimus_fw-la ab_fw-la inìtio_fw-la hoc_fw-la tenentes_fw-la quod_fw-la à _fw-la christo_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la apostolo_n traditum_fw-la est_fw-la be_v apostolical_a or_o no_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n question_v it_o because_o another_o more_o certain_a apostolical_a tradition_n viz._n the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o they_o to_o declare_v plain_o the_o contrary_a a_o difficult_a controversy_n this_o be_v account_v several_a provincial_a council_n in_o divers_a part_n be_v hold_v about_o it_o above_o 80_o african_a bishop_n assemble_v with_o their_o primate_n s._n cyprian_n and_o likewise_o firmilian_a and_o some_o fifty_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n with_o he_o judge_v it_o not_o apostolical_a 4._o apostolical_a see_v dionysii_n alex._n ep._n ad_fw-la xystum_fw-la euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 4._o yet_o afterward_o a_o general_n council_n proceed_v to_o decide_v it_o and_o their_o definition_n be_v esteem_v valid_a and_o oblige_v and_o those_o who_o continue_v in_o their_o former_a opinion_n which_o in_o africa_n be_v no_o small_a number_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n above_o 150_o bishop_n 411._o bishop_n see_v the_o conference_n with_o the_o donatist_n baron_fw-fr a.d._n 411._o be_v from_o that_o time_n account_v heretic_n it_o be_v true_a that_o this_o general_a council_n 1._o council_n be_v latense_n 1._o be_v hold_v some_o 50_o year_n after_o the_o other_o provincial_a one_o and_o that_o before_o this_o several_a of_o the_o african_a bishop_n have_v correct_v their_o former_a opinion_n but_o i_o suppose_v none_o will_v say_v that_o a_o general_n council_n if_o assemble_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o those_o provincial_n can_v not_o just_o have_v define_v it_o against_o they_o as_o stephanus_n his_o council_n at_o the_o same_o time_n do_v and_o just_o have_v require_v their_o obedience_n as_o be_v though_o a_o considerable_a number_n yet_o a_o much_o small_a part_n compare_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o their_o suffrage_n invalid_a contra_fw-la tot_fw-la millia_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la quibus_fw-la tunc_fw-la error_n in_fw-la toto_fw-la orb_n displicuit_fw-la to_o use_v s._n augustine_n word_n contra_fw-la cresconium_fw-la l_o 3._o c._n 3._o who_o elsewhere_o also_o 7._o also_o de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 7._o speak_v thus_o on_o this_o matter_n quaestionis_fw-la huius_fw-la obscuritas_fw-la prioribus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la temporibus_fw-la ante_fw-la schisma_fw-la donati_n magnos_fw-la viros_fw-la &_o magnâ_fw-la charitate_fw-la praedite_n patres_fw-la episcopos_fw-la ita_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la compulit_fw-la saluâ_fw-la pace_fw-la disceptare_fw-la atque_fw-la fluctuare_fw-la ut_fw-la diù_fw-fr conciliorum_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la quibuscunque_fw-la regionibus_fw-la diversa_fw-la statuta_fw-la nutaverint_fw-la so_o contra_fw-la cresconium_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 33._o he_o say_v similiter_fw-la inter_fw-la apostolos_fw-la de_fw-la circumcisione_n quaestio_fw-la sicut_fw-la postea_fw-la de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la inter_fw-la episcopos_fw-la non_fw-la parva_fw-la difficultate_fw-la nutabat_fw-la donec_fw-la plenario_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la concilio_fw-la quod_fw-la saluberrimè_fw-la sentiebatur_fw-la etiam_fw-la remotis_fw-la dubitationibus_fw-la firmaretur_fw-la by_o the_o act_n of_o these_o council_n i_o think_v it_o appear_v 7._o §._o 25._o n._n 7._o that_o point_n of_o former_a dispute_n and_o such_o where_o the_o contrary_a to_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v defend_v by_o a_o numerous_a party_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o have_v be_v afterward_o define_v and_o declare_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o such_o opposition_n of_o a_o number_n though_o in_o itself_o considerable_a yet_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a much_o small_a have_v be_v think_v insufficient_a to_o debilitate_v the_o authority_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o rest_n confirm_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o the_o church_n may_v cut_v off_o from_o her_o body_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o whole_a if_o such_o part_n happen_v to_o be_v gangr_v or_o putrify_a not_o only_o a_o little_a finger_n or_o toe_n but_o a_o arm_n or_o a_o leg._n but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o have_v this_o so_o understand_v as_o if_o that_o the_o church_n council_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o very_o great_a concernment_n do_v at_o any_o time_n proceed_v to_o declare_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n any_o proposition_n save_v *_o such_o as_o to_z disengage_v judgement_n carry_v great_a evidence_n in_o they_o flow_v either_o from_o express_v former_a tradition_n or_o the_o present_a clear_a deduction_n and_o *_o such_o as_o be_v admit_v and_o allow_v by_o much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n very_o prudent_o consider_v the_o great_a distraction_n and_o dissatisfaction_n of_o those_o time_n and_o their_o proneness_n to_o schism_n be_v say_v
due_a to_o this_o much_o great_a though_o some_o small_a part_n dissent_v and_o that_o a_o opposition_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n become_v heresy_n and_o a_o separation_n from_o their_o communion_n upon_o their_o require_v a_o approbation_n of_o and_o conformity_n to_o such_o their_o decree_n become_v schism_n if_o a_o opposition_n to_o or_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a be_v so_o §_o 28_o 14._o as_o for_o that_o way_n or_o those_o mark_n that_o be_v give_v usual_o by_o protestant_n 9_o protestant_n see_v calv._n instit_fw-la l._n 4_o c._n 1._o §._o 9_o by_o which_o christian_n be_v to_o discern_v 14._o prop._n 14._o in_o any_o division_n of_o they_o the_o society_n of_o the_o true_a church_n guide_v whether_o these_o happen_v to_o be_v more_o or_o few_o of_o a_o high_a or_o low_a rank_n than_o the_o other_o as_o they_o say_v sometime_o they_o may_v be_v the_o one_o sometime_o the_o other_o from_o the_o false_a namely_o these_o two_o 1_o the_o right_a teach_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n 2_o and_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 1_o if_o any_o be_v direct_v to_o find_v out_o by_o these_o mark_v those_o guide_n not_o only_o who_o communion_n they_o ought_v to_o join_v with_o but_o from_o who_o judgement_n they_o ought_v to_o learn_v which_o be_v the_o same_o true_a christian_a doctrine_n and_o which_o the_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i.e._n be_v by_o those_o mark_n first_o know_v to_o find_v out_o those_o person_n by_o who_o they_o may_v come_v to_o know_v these_o mark_n as_o for_o example_n if_o one_o that_o seek_v a_o guide_n to_o direct_v he_o what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o god_n the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n be_v first_o to_o try_v if_o consubstantiality_n be_v true_a and_o then_o to_o choose_v he_o for_o his_o guide_n in_o this_o point_n that_o hold_v it_o the_o very_a proposal_n of_o this_o way_n seem_v a_o sufficient_a confutation_n of_o it_o for_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o decide_v that_o first_o themselves_o for_o the_o decision_n of_o which_o they_o seek_v to_o another_o judgement_n and_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o after_o this_o they_o will_v in_o a_o search_n pitch_v on_o a_o judge_n that_o decide_v as_o they_o do_v but_o then_o this_o be_v seek_v for_o a_o confederate_a for_o a_o companion_n not_o seek_v for_o a_o guide_n for_o a_o governor_n when_o they_o can_v state_n the_o true_a doctrine_n themselves_o their_o search_n for_o a_o guide_n to_o state_n it_o be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o they_o may_v then_o search_v rather_o to_o who_o to_o teach_v it_o than_o of_o who_o to_o learn_v it_o it_o be_v grant_v indeed_o 1._o §._o 29._o n._n 1._o suppose_v the_o mark_n abovenamed_a be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o right_a church-guide_n which_o be_v not_o so_o 2._o so_o see_v §._o 29_o n._n 2._o that_o these_o right_a guide_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o false_a by_o this_o mark_n i.e._n by_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o reach_v by_o so_o many_o as_o can_v attain_v the_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o this_o true_a doctrine_n by_o some_o other_o mean_n or_o way_n as_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n father_n etc._n etc._n nor_o be_v private_a man_n try_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o differ_a guide_n by_o these_o deny_v here_o to_o be_v lawful_a nor_o deny_v that_o the_o proposal_n of_o such_o a_o trial_n to_o the_o people_n may_v by_o the_o true_a guide_n even_o by_o the_o apostle_n be_v make_v use_n of_o with_o good_a success_n because_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n may_v evidence_n to_o some_o person_n intelligent_a in_o some_o controversy_n less_o difficult_a the_o truth_n of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o some_o of_o the_o learned_a out_o of_o great_a passion_n or_o interest_n may_v gainsay_v but_o then_o for_o all_o such_o point_n wherein_o a_o private_a man_n trial_n by_o scripture_n be_v very_o liable_a to_o mistake_v and_o the_o sense_n thereof_o not_o clear_a unto_o he_o as_o no_o private_a person_n have_v reason_n to_o think_v it_o clear_a in_o such_o point_n of_o controversy_n wherein_o the_o church-guide_n examine_v the_o same_o scripture_n yet_o do_v differ_v among_o themselves_o and_o perhaps_o the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o from_o he_o here_o he_o must_v necessary_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o right_a guide_n by_o some_o other_o mark_v prescribe_v he_o for_o that_o purpose_n and_o not_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n or_o clearness_n of_o those_o scripture_n for_o instruction_n in_o the_o truth_n or_o sense_n of_o which_o he_o seek_v such_o a_o guide_n unsound_a therefore_o be_v that_o position_n of_o mr._n stillingfleet_n rat._n account_v p._n 7._o that_o of_o necessity_n the_o rule_n i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v and_o by_o it_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n must_v be_v certain_o know_v before_o ever_o any_o one_o can_v with_o safety_n depend_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o church_n and_o very_o infirm_a that_o argue_v of_o his_o and_o so_o all_o that_o he_o afterward_o build_v upon_o it_o where_o he_o deduce_v from_o this_o proposition_n concede_v that_o a_o church_n which_o have_v err_v can_v be_v rely_v on_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n therefore_o man_n must_v be_v satisfy_v whâther_o a_o church_n have_v err_v or_o no_o before_o they_o can_v judge_v whether_o she_o may_v be_v rely_v oâ_n or_o no_o for_o though_o this_o be_v allow_v here_o that_o such_o church_n as_o may_v be_v rely_v on_o have_v among_o other_o property_n or_o sure_a mark_n this_o for_o one_o that_o she_o do_v not_o or_o can_v err_v yet_o many_o other_o mark_v or_o property_n she_o may_v have_v by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v she_o may_v be_v rely_v on_o who_o be_v not_o first_o able_a to_o discern_v or_o prove_v all_o her_o doctrine_n for_o truth_n or_o demonstrate_v she_o not_o err_v such_o argue_v be_v muchwhat_a like_a to_o this_o that_o body_n which_o cast_v no_o light_n can_v be_v fire_n therefore_o a_o man_n must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o such_o a_o body_n give_v light_a before_o he_o can_v judge_v whether_o it_o be_v fire_n not_o so_o because_o one_o blind_a and_o not_o see_v the_o light_n at_o all_o yet_o may_v certain_o know_v it_o be_v fire_n by_o another_o property_n by_o its_o scorch_a heat_n or_o like_o this_o no_o book_n than_o contain_v any_o false_a proposition_n in_o it_o can_v be_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o man_n must_v be_v satisfy_v whether_o such_o book_n contain_v any_o false_a proposition_n in_o it_o or_o no_o before_o they_o can_v judge_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o no._n not_o so_o for_o man_n ordinary_o by_o another_o way_n viz._n universal_a tradition_n become_v assure_v that_o such_o book_n be_v holy_a scripture_n and_o thence_o collect_v that_o it_o contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o contradictory_n or_o false_a and_o so_o it_o be_v for_o the_o true_a church_n or_o our_o true_a guide_n that_o though_o she_o always_o conserve_v truth_n yet_o man_n come_v to_o know_v she_o by_o another_o way_n and_o of_o she_o first_o know_v afterward_o learn_v that_o truth_n which_o she_o conserve_v but_o 2_o these_o protestant_a mark_n viz._n truth_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o right_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n 2._o §._o 29._o n._n 2._o if_o we_o can_v attain_v a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o another_o way_n and_o need_v not_o to_o learn_v they_o from_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v no_o infallible_a mark_n of_o that_o catholic_n body_n and_o society_n to_o which_o christian_n may_v secure_o adhere_v and_o rank_n themselves_o in_o its_o communion_n because_o such_o body_n when_o entire_o profess_v the_o christian_a faith_n yet_o still_o may_v be_v schismatical_a and_o some_o way_n guilty_a of_o dissolve_v the_o christian_a unity_n as_o dr._n field_n among_o other_o free_o concede_v who_o 33._o who_o of_o the_o ch._n l_o 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 31._o 33._o therefore_o to_o make_v up_o as_o he_o say_v the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n absolute_a full_a and_o perfect_a and_o general_o diginguish_v this_o church_n from_o all_o other_o society_n add_v to_o these_o two_o the_o entire_a profession_n of_o save_a faith_n and_o the_o right_a use_n of_o sacrament_n a_o three_o mark_v viz._n a_o union_n or_o connexion_n of_o man_n in_o this_o profession_n and_o use_v of_o these_o sacrament_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n appoint_v and_o authorize_v to_o direct_v and_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o happy_a way_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o pastor_n lawful_o authorize_v he_o 14._o he_o l._n 1._o c._n 14._o grant_v those_o not_o to_o be_v who_o though_o they_o have_v power_n of_o order_n yet_o have_v no_o power_n of_o
they_o remove_v it_o again_o with_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n quite_o out_o of_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n and_o free_v the_o reform_a of_o their_o former_a fear_n which_o rectify_v of_o so_o pernicious_a a_o mistake_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n by_o a_o more_o sober_a posterity_n well_o consider_v may_v i_o hope_v in_o time_n much_o conduce_v to_o the_o reunion_n of_o that_o body_n which_o by_o this_o great_a engine_n of_o satan_n chief_o have_v be_v heretofore_o so_o unhappy_o divide_v §_o 33_o in_o such_o a_o division_n then_o to_o prosecute_v our_o enquiry_n viz._n who_o or_o where_o these_o governor_n be_v that_o be_v our_o present_a guide_n and_o that_o seem_v so_o much_o authorize_v by_o both_o side_n in_o the_o former_a proposition_n first_n if_o this_o question_n have_v be_v make_v by_o any_o 150_o year_n ago_o there_o have_v be_v no_o difficulty_n to_o resolve_v it_o for_o that_o body_n here_o first_o name_v be_v then_o the_o whole_a or_o the_o only_a catholic_n church_n as_o to_o the_o west_n further_a than_o which_o he_o that_o will_v then_o have_v go_v for_o choice_n of_o his_o religion_n will_v have_v fare_v worse_a &c_n worse_a see_v disc_n 3._o §._o 26._o &c_n &c_n that_o body_n therefore_o then_o must_v have_v be_v conform_v to_o or_o the_o whole_a desert_v as_o indeed_o it_o be_v 4._o be_v see_v 1_o disc_n §._o 55._o n._n 4._o now_o this_o body_n be_v not_o change_v in_o its_o liturgy_n in_o its_o common_a doctrine_n in_o its_o rite_n since_o that_o time_n from_o what_o the_o whole_a be_v then_o witness_v the_o reformation_n itself_o which_o be_v make_v against_o these_o very_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n that_o be_v now_o 5._o now_o 1_o disc_n §._o 47._o 50._o n._n 2._o 36_o n._n 5._o as_o impose_v on_o they_o before_o the_o be_v of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n though_o some_o 224._o some_o stillingf_n p._n 268_o 370_o field_n p._n 880._o 187_o 224._o perhaps_o to_o lighten_v the_o charge_n of_o schism_n will_v fain_o persuade_v the_o contrary_a and_o i_o wish_v the_o only_o contest_v between_o the_o two_o present_a church_n be_v put_v upon_o the_o trial_n of_o this_o §_o 34_o it_o be_v here_o apparent_a then_o which_o of_o these_o two_o at_o that_o time_n when_o as_o yet_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o have_v be_v our_o lawful_a guide_n and_o mother_n church_n and_o easy_o clear_v what_o then_o be_v its_o doctrine_n of_o which_o guide_n protestant_n also_o testify_v that_o then_o it_o err_v not_o in_o necessary_n see_v before_o prop._n 3._o §_o 3._o etc._n etc._n disc_n 1._o §_o 41._o and_o that_o also_o in_o all_o other_o point_n christian_n be_v to_o believe_v it_o so_o many_o as_o can_v not_o demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a see_v prop_n 9_o 10._o §_o 20_o 21._o we_o therefore_o may_v promise_v the_o same_o security_n to_o ourselves_o in_o follow_v this_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o the_o protestant_n call_v it_o though_o it_o call_v itself_o the_o whole_a still_o now_o as_o our_o forefather_n have_v in_o follow_v the_o whole_a then_o and_o this_o rest_v still_o in_o this_o body_n remain_v the_o same_o with_o what_o once_o be_v the_o whole_a seem_v security_n enough_o to_o all_o those_o who_o if_o this_o body_n be_v now_o so_o entire_a and_o universal_a as_o it_o be_v then_o dare_v not_o now_o attempt_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a or_o to_o those_o who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o demonstrate_v the_o former_a separation_n that_o have_v be_v make_v just_a and_o necessary_a the_o tie_n of_o obedience_n to_o and_o acquiescence_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o guide_n be_v dissolvable_a by_o none_o save_o demonstrator_n of_o their_o error_n 44._o error_n see_v 3_o disc_n §._o 44._o which_o among_o the_o church_n subject_n can_v never_o be_v but_o a_o very_a small_a number_n §_o 35_o 2_o but_o beside_o this_o main_a motive_n of_o submission_n to_o the_o first_o body_n as_o our_o right_a judge_n and_o guide_n because_o we_o find_v it_o the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o church_n catholic_n that_o be_v 150_o year_n ago_o whereas_o the_o second_o body_n confess_v themselves_o a_o church_n that_o be_v since_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o that_o other_o and_o a_o body_n reform_v from_o the_o pretend_a error_n and_o corruption_n find_v therein_o i._n e._n from_o the_o error_n which_o some_o of_o the_o subject_n and_o of_o the_o flock_n for_o such_o i_o reckon_v a_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a find_v in_o their_o guide_n and_o judge_n when_o themselves_o also_o be_v inferior_a to_o they_o both_o in_o their_o paucity_n of_o number_n and_o quality_n of_o place_n i_o say_v beside_o this_o in_o the_o second_o place_n if_o we_o will_v follow_v the_o principle_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o 12_o proposition_n 23._o proposition_n §._o 23._o i._n e._n in_o any_o contradiction_n happen_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o superior_a person_n and_o synod_n as_o our_o true_a guide_n and_o among_o these_o to_o a_o major_a part_n as_o our_o guide_n soon_o than_o to_o a_o minor_a by_o which_o rule_n the_o christian_a world_n have_v be_v preserve_v hitherto_o from_o all_o those_o which_o both_o side_n agree_v to_o have_v be_v heresy_n and_o which_o rule_n unless_o we_o follow_v we_o dissolve_v all_o government_n and_o all_o unity_n of_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o introduce_v flat_a anarchy_n and_o confusion_n whilst_o for_o a_o monarchical_a government_n of_o the_o church_n protestant_n will_v not_o hear_v of_o it_o and_o in_o a_o aristocratical_a or_o government_n consist_v of_o many_o it_o can_v be_v presume_v but_o that_o there_o will_v be_v some_o dissenter_n which_o if_o they_o may_v be_v follow_v against_o the_o other_o i_o ask_v by_o what_o rule_n of_o government_n be_v it_o that_o the_o arrian_n eutychian_n and_o nestorian_a bishop_n shop_n be_v force_v to_o yield_v and_o be_v divest_v of_o their_o pastoral_a authority_n or_o guide_v any_o long_a by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n last_o if_o we_o will_v be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n out_o of_o council_n as_o we_o be_v in_o it_o thus_o also_o we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v the_o first_o of_o these_o body_n for_o our_o true_a and_o rightful_a judge_n for_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o this_o first_o be_v a_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church-governor_n join_v also_o with_o the_o prime_a patriarch_n of_o christianity_n and_o so_o to_o be_v prefer_v by_o we_o before_o a_o minor_a separate_v if_o you_o will_v know_v then_o which_o of_o these_o two_o present_a body_n of_o ecclesiastic_n you_o be_v to_o obey_v out_o of_o a_o council_n first_o do_v you_o imagine_v they_o now_o meet_v in_o a_o council_n and_o next_o that_o in_o this_o council_n every_o one_o deliver_v concern_v thing_n debate_v that_o which_o be_v his_o present_a judgement_n when_o call_v to_o the_o council_n and_o this_o be_v but_o reasonable_a since_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n of_o new_a demonstration_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n which_o already_o in_o so_o much_o write_v on_o all_o side_n these_o bishop_n have_v not_o see_v and_o since_o former_a tradition_n and_o not_o argument_n be_v the_o chief_a rule_n of_o their_o proceed_n and_o no_o example_n be_v find_v in_o any_o council_n past_a wherein_o its_o member_n have_v conclude_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o precede_a common_a faith_n of_o that_o age_n wherein_o such_o council_n be_v hold_v especial_o imagine_v what_o their_o sentence_n may_v be_v concern_v this_o point_n whether_o the_o former_a council_n that_o have_v be_v may_v have_v err_v in_o their_o definition_n which_o one_o point_n state_v negative_o ruin_v protestantism_n and_o then_o if_o your_o conscience_n weigh_v the_o present_a persuasion_n and_o practice_n of_o christian_a prelate_n do_v convince_v you_o that_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o one_o side_n will_v be_v very_o inconsiderable_a in_o it_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o other_o as_o likewise_o that_o s._n peter_n chair_n concern_v which_o chair_n the_o church_n ancient_a maxim_n have_v be_v sine_fw-la pontifice_fw-la romano_n nihil_fw-la finiendum_fw-la august_n finiendum_fw-la see_v in_o athan_n apol._n 2._o epist_n julii_n &_o innocentii_fw-la ep._n 91._o apud_fw-la august_n will_v join_v with_o this_o major_a part_n against_o the_o other_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o you_o here_o follow_v the_o same_o body_n in_o the_o interval_n of_o a_o council_n which_o you_o must_v have_v follow_v in_o the_o time_n of_o a_o council_n unless_o also_o you_o will_v reverse_v the_o common_a law_n of_o council_n §_o 36_o note_n that_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o great_a body_n of_o the_o western_a church_n contain_v under_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n which_o do_v yet_o by_o god_n permission_n enjoy_v all_o
the_o privilege_n of_o a_o undisturbed_a ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o which_o seem_v by_o reason_n of_o its_o numerous_a clergy_n and_o populacy_n and_o extent_n of_o the_o arm_n of_o this_o body_n &_o propagation_n of_o its_o faith_n into_o all_o the_o other_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christianity_n &_o that_o which_o have_v be_v always_o the_o most_o dignify_v by_o reason_n of_o s._n peter_n chair_n from_o which_o for_o any_o of_o the_o western_a body_n to_o make_v a_o appeal_n out_o of_o these_o bound_n to_o the_o present_a eastern_a church_n now_o hinder_v by_o the_o great_a oppressor_n of_o christianity_n there_o &_o disturb_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o any_o such_o judicature_n and_o also_o much_o divide_v among_o themselves_o and_o who_o have_v not_o meet_v in_o any_o council_n for_o this_o eight_o hundred_o year_n save_v by_o send_v at_o several_a time_n their_o delegate_n into_o the_o west_n for_o any_o i_o say_v to_o make_v a_o appeal_n from_o a_o church_n flourish_v in_o government_n and_o discipline_n in_o learning_n and_o record_n of_o antiquity_n the_o city_n still_o on_o a_o hill_n and_o candle_n on_o a_o candlestick_n to_o seek_v for_o vote_n among_o the_o jacobite_n maronites_n caphtite_n armenian_n abyssine_n or_o greek_a church_n etc._n etc._n several_a of_o they_o be_v suspect_v of_o ancient_a heresy_n and_o if_o heretic_n no_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n appear_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o refusal_n of_o a_o trial_n and_o avoid_v the_o sentence_n of_o any_o such_o guide_n and_o judge_n as_o god_n providence_n have_v afford_v we_o and_o beside_o this_o be_v a_o appeal_n where_o can_v those_o church_n now_o free_o deliver_v their_o sentence_n and_o be_v now_o set_v on_o the_o bench_n as_o this_o present_a judge_n the_o appealant_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o any_o success_n to_o their_o cause_n for_o that_o these_o church_n or_o at_o least_o the_o great_a body_n of_o they_o as_o be_v show_v elsewhere_o 158._o elsewhere_o disc_n 3._o §._o 158._o appear_v to_o keep_v as_o great_a a_o distance_n from_o the_o reform_a as_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o western_a body_n do_v §_o 37_o 3_o if_o the_o council_n that_o be_v extant_a and_o repute_v for_o general_n since_o the_o first_o six_o or_o seven_o hundred_o year_n to_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n reformation_n shall_v be_v by_o any_o acknowledge_v either_o for_o general_n 3._o 3._o or_o for_o the_o most_o universal_a that_o can_v well_o be_v convene_v or_o at_o least_o that_o be_v find_v actual_o to_o have_v be_v convene_v a_o thing_n which_o i_o think_v though_o the_o testimony_n the_o present_a church_n give_v to_o they_o be_v make_v no_o use_n of_o the_o common_a veracity_n of_o history_n will_v clear_v to_o we_o beside_o that_o none_o have_v any_o other_o council_n of_o a_o equal_a authority_n in_o these_o time_n to_o nominate_v and_o set_v up_o against_o they_o and_o those_o who_o demolish_v they_o do_v it_o without_o erect_v or_o discover_v to_o we_o any_o better_a or_o any_o beside_o i_o say_v if_o any_o think_v meet_v to_o rely_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o past_a council_n in_o the_o present_a matter_n these_o also_o will_v sufficient_o evidence_n to_o we_o that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o body_n forenamed_a be_v our_o present_a rightful_a guide_n and_o judge_n for_o since_o the_o act_n and_o law_n of_o such_o council_n be_v not_o only_o of_o force_n and_o obligatory_a to_o those_o present_a time_n wherein_o they_o sit_v but_o to_o all_o future_a age_n with_o the_o execution_n of_o which_o act_n and_o decree_n the_o succeed_a pastor_n and_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o several_a station_n and_o residence_n in_o all_o follow_a time_n stand_v charge_v till_o these_o be_v by_o a_o equal_a authority_n reverse_v it_o seem_v clear_a that_o in_o any_o division_n happen_v afterward_o of_o these_o pastor_n those_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v our_o right_a guide_n who_o own_o adhere_v to_o and_o propagate_v the_o definition_n and_o law_n of_o these_o former_a council_n now_o this_o we_o see_v the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o body_n do_v as_o the_o latter_a renounce_v they_o yet_o renounce_v they_o without_o the_o produce_v of_o the_o patronage_n of_o any_o council_n at_o all_o in_o their_o stead_n pull_v down_o as_o it_o be_v all_o the_o church_n castle_n and_o fort_n if_o i_o may_v call_v her_o council_n so_o against_o the_o incursion_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v build_v in_o several_a age_n for_o near_a a_o thousand_o year_n and_o yet_o show_v none_o other_o at_o all_o for_o christian_n in_o the_o many_o point_n that_o have_v be_v dispute_v to_o repair_v to_o but_o leave_v the_o sad_a spectator_n of_o these_o their_o demolition_n quite_o dishearten_v as_o diffide_v in_o the_o church_n judgement_n so_o much_o decry_v for_o error_n and_o have_v yet_o more_o reason_n to_o distrust_v their_o own_o and_o so_o not_o know_v in_o this_o case_n whither_o to_o betake_v themselves_o for_o the_o settle_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o conscience_n for_o sure_o this_o unerringness_n which_o the_o late_a reformer_n have_v deny_v to_o those_o great_a body_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v in_o reason_n assume_v to_o those_o lesser_a convention_n of_o their_o own_o chap._n v._n the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_v or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non_fw-la necessary_n needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o necessary_n clear_v in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n or_o guide_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o §_o 39_o n._n 1._o 1_o no_o guide_n which_o be_v infallible_a 2_o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o false_a or_o know_v and_o understand_v their_o decree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3_o or_o which_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o for_o learn_v necessary_n §_o 39_o n._n 2._o the_o reply_n 2._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n §_o 40._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a §_o 40._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v reply_v then_o 1._o *_o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1_o that_o some_o of_o the_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o scripture_n write_v have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a §_o 41._o 2_o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n the_o more_o security_n christian_n have_v in_o the_o church_n judgement_n §_o 42._o 3_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n clear_o to_o all_o 1_o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o thing_n doubtful_a therein_o direct_v to_o these_o guide_n §_o 43._o 2_o sufficient_a if_o such_o thing_n be_v clear_v to_o these_o guide_n by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n §_o 44._o 3_o or_o if_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n touch_v these_o matter_n be_v clear_v to_o they_o by_o tradition_n §_o ib._n 4_o or_o if_o such_o sense_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o well_o examine_v and_o compare_v to_o they_o though_o not_o to_o all_o §_o 45._o 2_o y_o concern_v the_o guide_n 1_o that_o scripture_n in_o what_o it_o be_v ambiguous_a can_v be_v a_o guide_n §_o 49._o n._n 1._o 2_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o christian_n be_v in_o or_o by_o the_o scripture_n direct_v to_o another_o guide_n ib._n n._n 2._o 3_o yet_o that_o thây_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o direct_v §_o 47._o n._n 3._o 4_o and_o may_v in_o many_o point_n more_o easy_o understand_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o decision_n than_o of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o §_o 38_o the_o usual_a security_n that_o some_o of_o they_o give_v their_o follower_n α._n α._n be_v this_o α_n that_o all_o controversy_n that_o arise_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o matter_n very_o profitable_a 54._o profitable_a chillingw_o p._n 54._o be_v so_o clear_o decide_v or_o determine_v in_o scripture_n that_o none_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a use_v that_o industry_n which_o humane_a prudence_n and_o ordinary_a discretion_n his_o condition_n consider_v advise_v he_o to_o can_v err_v in_o they_o 20.86_o they_o see_v chiling_n p_o 115.92_o 19.58_o 59_o pref._n §._o 30._o etc._n etc._n
archbishop_n lawd_n p._n 196._o n._n 3._o sill_a p._n 149._o whitby_n p._n 441._o tillois_n rule_n of_o faith_n p._n 20.86_o where_o the_o unlearned_a seem_v also_o to_o be_v put_v in_o lest_o these_o at_o least_o for_o their_o ignorance_n shall_v be_v refer_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o a_o guide_n for_o the_o end_n of_o their_o doubt_n and_o use_v ordinary_a industry_n add_v lest_o private_a man_n jealous_a of_o not_o use_v their_o utmost_a industry_n to_o understand_v aright_o the_o scripture_n shall_v upon_o this_o account_n be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v safe_a for_o they_o to_o repair_v and_o adhere_v to_o a_o guide_n next_o that_o for_o all_o other_o controversy_n that_o arise_v in_o non-necessaries_a neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v end_v so_o that_o as_o one_o brief_o state_n the_o case_n 59_o case_n chillingw_n p._n 59_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o contain_v thing_n necessary_a and_o wherein_o error_n be_v dangerous_a need_v no_o infallible_a judge_n or_o interpreter_n or_o rather_o can_v but_o have_v every_o one_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n upon_o supposition_n of_o a_o due_a diligence_n use_v be-because_a they_o be_v plain_a and_o those_o that_o be_v obscure_a need_n none_o because_o they_o contain_v not_o thing_n necessary_a neither_o be_v error_n in_o they_o dangerous_a or_o as_o another_o 86._o another_o tillot_v p._n 86._o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o plain_a text_n every_o one_o may_v be_v certain_a and_o for_o the_o obscure_a one_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a every_o one_o shall_v and_n thus_o have_v no_o live_v judge_n to_o decide_v controversy_n they_o make_v those_o controversy_n so_o much_o the_o few_o that_o need_v decide_n and_o if_o we_o here_o further_a question_n 1._o §._o 39_o n._n 1._o why_o all_o controversy_n in_o necessary_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v clear_o decide_v in_o scripture_n or_o yet_o more_o why_o so_o clear_o decide_v there_o as_o that_o even_o the_o unlearned_a can_v mistake_v in_o they_o mr._n chillingworth_n answer_v they_o be_v so_o because_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v to_o all_o sufficient_o perfect_a and_o sufficient_o intelligible_a in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a and_o my_o reason_n hereof_o say_v he_o be_v convince_a 92._o p._n 92._o and_o demonstrative_a because_o nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o be_v plain_o reveal_v which_o be_v grant_v he_o but_o he_o must_v add_v plain_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o plain_o there_o to_o the_o unlearned_a also_o otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o purpose_n this_o proposition_n therefore_o they_o also_o maintain_v that_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n must_v be_v plain_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n to_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a and_o ground_n it_o on_o this_o reason_n because_o god_n who_o require_v from_o all_o christian_n even_o the_o unlearned_a belief_n of_o such_o necessary_n yet_o have_v leave_v they_o no_o other_o certain_a mean_n of_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o save_v only_o the_o scripture_n 441._o scripture_n see_v chillingw_o p._n 71._o whitby_n p._n 441._o and_o if_o it_o be_v reply_v here_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o refer_v they_o to_o a_o perpetual_a live_a guide_n the_o church_n for_o the_o expound_v and_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o ambiguous_a scripture_n many_o thing_n they_o object_n against_o it_o 2._o §._o 39_o n._n 2._o one_a 2._o they_o earnest_o dispute_v that_o this_o guide_n the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o be_v not_o infallible_a but_o that_o they_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o γ._n γ._n γ_n âly_o they_o ask_v many_o question_n about_o such_o guide_n as_o they_o conceive_v unanswerable_a how_o in_o a_o division_n of_o these_o live_a guide_n etc._n guide_n see_v mr._n stillingft_o p._n 101.508_o &c_n &c_n chillingw_o p._n 93._o whitby_n p._n 430._o etc._n etc._n the_o unlearned_a may_v come_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o right_a and_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o this_o find_v how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v her_o definition_n and_o decree_n what_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o decree_n &_o c_o see_v many_o of_o they_o collect_v in_o 3_o disc_n §_o 86._o contend_v that_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o such_o division_n of_o guide_n have_v no_o certain_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a nor_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n more_o easy_o than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n δ._n δ._n 3._o δ_n last_o they_o say_v 171._o say_v see_v mr._n chillingw_n p_o 61_o 104_o 171._o that_o if_o god_n have_v leave_v christian_n in_o all_o age_n to_o learn_v necessary_n from_o their_o other_o guide_n he_o will_v at_o least_o in_o the_o scripture_n have_v direct_v christian_n to_o repair_v to_o these_o guide_n for_o learning_n of_o they_o ε._n ε._n ε_n and_o again_o for_o the_o division_n happen_v among_o these_o guide_n well_o fore-seen_a by_o he_o he_o will_v have_v tell_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n what_o party_n in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o adhere_v to_o as_o that_o they_o shall_v always_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o the_o most_o general_a council_n and_o in_o dissent_v vote_n here_o to_o the_o major_a part_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o this_o assertion_n that_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a or_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o any_o sort_n of_o christian_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n whereby_o to_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n save_v only_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o main_a pillar_n on_o which_o mr._n chillingworth_n and_o his_o follower_n sustain_v the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o the_o reformation_n pref_o reformation_n see_v chillingw_o pref_o before_o i_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o these_o 155.156_o these_o 30._o etc._n etc._n comp_n c._n 2._o §._o 155.156_o i_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o note_v to_o you_o 1_o that_o the_o devolving_a the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n not_o upon_o the_o sufficiency_n only_o but_o upon_o the_o clearness_n 1._o §._o 40._o n._n 1._o of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n 1._o 1._o and_o decline_v any_o constant_a adhesion_n to_o the_o church_n judgement_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o it_o seem_v not_o a_o little_a prejudicial_a to_o the_o protestant_n cause_n in_o that_o this_o be_v observe_v of_o old_a by_o tertullian_n austin_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o other_o father_n 35._o father_n tertull._n de_fw-fr pâaescriptione_n adversn_v heretic_n s._n aust_n ep._n â22_n contr_n a_o maximinum_n l._n 1._o vincent_n lir._n c._n 35._o to_o have_v be_v the_o way_n that_o all_o former_a heresy_n have_v take_v decline_v the_o church_n and_o its_o tradition_n and_o pretend_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o support_n of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a heretic_n thus_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n sive_fw-la apud_fw-la suos_fw-la sive_fw-la alienos_fw-la etc._n etc._n nihil_fw-la unquam_fw-la penè_fw-la de_fw-la suis_fw-la proferunt_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la etiam_fw-la scripturae_fw-la verbis_fw-la adumbrare_fw-la conentâr_fw-la lege_fw-la pauli_n samozateni_n opuscula_fw-la priscilliani_n eunomâi_n joviniani_fw-la reliquarumque_fw-la pestium_fw-la cernas_fw-la infinitam_fw-la exemplorum_fw-la congeriom_n prope_fw-la nullam_fw-la omitti_fw-la pag_n nam_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la novi_fw-la aut_fw-la veteris_fw-la testamenti_fw-la sententâi_fw-la fucata_fw-la &_o colorata_fw-la sit_fw-la then_o inquire_v in_o this_o case_n 35._o case_n contra_fw-la haereses_fw-la c._n 35._o quonian_n modo_fw-la in_o scripture_n sanctis_fw-la âatholici_fw-la homines_fw-la veritatem_fw-la â_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernent_fw-la he_o answer_v 38._o answer_v c._n 38._o hoc_fw-la scilicet_fw-la facere_fw-la magnopere_fw-la curabunt_fw-la ut_fw-la divinum_fw-la canonem_fw-la secundum_fw-la universalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la traditiones_fw-la &_o juxta_fw-la catholici_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la regulas_fw-la interpretentur_fw-la and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v also_o observable_a in_o that_o new-revived_n most_o dangerous_a heresy_n of_o socinianism_n which_o draw_v up_o for_o itself_o against_o church-authority_n muchwhat_a the_o same_o plea_n as_o be_v here_o above_o make_v by_o these_o protestant_n some_o of_o which_o that_o you_o may_v compare_v they_o i_o have_v transcribe_v you_o here_o out_o of_o volkelius_n 7._o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la l._n 5._o c_o 7._o a_o little_a contract_v there_o than_o he_o say_v quae_fw-la de_fw-la fido_fw-it in_o christum_fw-la statuenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la patere_fw-la chaâitatem_fw-la quo_fw-la que_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la ita_fw-la descriptam_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la quicunque_fw-la eam_fw-la ex_fw-la animo_fw-la colere_fw-la mentemque_fw-la advertere_fw-la velit_fw-la ignorare_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la quid_fw-la sibi_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la partibus_fw-la sequendum_fw-la praesertim_fw-la si_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la petat_fw-la quam_fw-la ille_fw-la nemini_fw-la denegat_fw-la again_n deum_n qui_fw-la religionem_fw-la christianam_fw-la usque_fw-la admundi_fw-la finem_fw-la vigere_fw-la voluit_fw-la cuirass_n etiam_fw-la tale_n aliquid_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la
extare_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la quatenus_fw-la omnino_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la est_fw-la necessarium_fw-la cognosci_fw-la indubitatò_fw-la possit_fw-la at_o nihil_fw-la tale_n extare_fw-la praeter_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la dicas_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la esse_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la cognitio_fw-la semper_fw-la peti_fw-la possit_fw-la primum_fw-la statuendum_fw-la tibi_fw-la erit_fw-la deum_fw-la etiam_fw-la decrevisse_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la falsa_fw-la enim_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la rem_fw-la inepta_fw-la est_fw-la semper_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la mundi_fw-la finem_fw-la extet_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la extet_fw-la à _fw-la quâ_fw-la omnes_fw-la salutaris_fw-la uâritâtis_fw-la notitiam_fw-la indubitatè_fw-la pevere_a queant_fw-la requiritur_fw-la ut_fw-la homines_fw-la complures_fw-la coetum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o omnium_fw-la âoulos_fw-la incurrat_fw-la constituant_fw-la at_o non_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la quis_fw-la certam_fw-la aliquam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la hoc_fw-la privilegio_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la donatam_fw-la esse_fw-la contendat_fw-la ut_fw-la fide_fw-la excidere_fw-la nequeat_fw-la deinde_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la veram_fw-la certo_fw-la cognosci_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la cognoscatur_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la salutaris_fw-la christi_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praeterea_fw-la indipsum_fw-la saltem_fw-la debuisse_fw-la alicubi_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la clarè_v ac_fw-la perspicuè_fw-fr scriptum_fw-la extaâe_fw-la debere_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la peti_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la scitu_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessaria_fw-la &_o quaenam_fw-la ea_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ac_fw-la unde_fw-la debeat_fw-la cognosci_fw-la clare_v describi_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o câ_fw-la cognoscenda_fw-la facile_fw-la errare_fw-la posset_n nam_fw-la si_fw-la quippiam_fw-la scriptu_fw-la fuisset_fw-la necessarium_fw-la hoc_fw-la sane_fw-la fuisset_fw-la sine_fw-la quo_fw-la reliqua_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la cripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la aut_fw-la parum_fw-la admodum_fw-la prodessent_fw-la denique_fw-la eam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quam_fw-la isti_fw-la pontificii_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la extitisse_fw-la volunt_fw-la constare_fw-la multis_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la atque_fw-la adeo_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quoquâ_n quâ_n ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessariae_fw-la gravissime_fw-la errare_fw-la thing_n usual_o plead_v by_o mr._n chillingw_o and_o his_o follower_n but_o whether_o borrow_a from_o these_o i_o can_v say_v nothing_o n._n nothing_o see_v below_o §_o 47._o n._n thus_o the_o socinian_o lie_v the_o platform_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o when_o the_o protestant_n for_o confute_v their_o error_n urge_v father_n and_o church-authority_n against_o they_o they_o reply_v that_o they_o have_v learn_v this_o from_o they_o to_o receive_v nothing_o beside_o scripture_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o father_n prafat_n father_n see_v simlerus_n de_fw-fr filio_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o s._n spiritu_fw-la prafat_n meanwhile_o appeal_n of_o the_o father_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o acknowledge_v frequent_a and_o that_o also_o sometime_o wave_v church-authority_n 14._o church-authority_n see_v s._n austin_n contra_fw-la maximinum_n l._n 3._o c._n 14._o but_o never_o make_v in_o opposition_n to_o it_o former_a or_o present_a their_o great_a humility_n which_o also_o keep_v they_o orthodox_n hinder_v they_o from_o presume_v this_o and_o have_v any_o of_o they_o do_v it_o posterity_n will_v not_o have_v style_v he_o a_o father_n the_o second_o thing_n be_v 2._o §._o 40._o n._n 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n or_o entireness_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2_o 2_o for_o the_o contain_v all_o those_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v simple_o necessary_a of_o all_o person_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o attain_v salvation_n roman_a catholic_n deny_v it_o not_o but_o only_o deny_v such_o a_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o some_o of_o those_o as_o christian_n can_v mistake_v or_o pervert_v catholic_n contend_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o christian_n according_a as_o the_o church_n out_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n have_v or_o shall_v declare_v and_o propose_v they_o as_o touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n several_a function_n of_o the_o clergy_n administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o some_o other_o sacred_a ceremony_n and_o particular_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o as_o to_o the_o clear_a mention_n therein_o of_o all_o those_o appertinent_o which_o yet_o have_v be_v ever_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o touch_v the_o obligation_n of_o believe_v and_o due_a observe_v of_o several_a of_o these_o tradition_n as_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n learned_a protestant_n also_o agree_v with_o they_o 9_o they_o see_v dr._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o dr._n tailor_n episcopacy_n assert_v §_o 19_o reason_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o covenant_n 1647._o p._n 9_o and_o in_o particular_a concern_v the_o believe_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n though_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n see_v mr._n chillingworths_n concession_n p._n 55._o 114_o 55._o see_v also_o p._n 114_o where_o he_o say_v that_o when_o protestant_n affirm_v against_o papist_n that_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n their_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o by_o scripture_n all_o thing_n absolute_o may_v be_v prove_v which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n to_o a_o gain-say_a that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o that_o the_o book_n call_v scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o that_o will_v deny_v these_o assertion_n when_o they_o be_v speak_v will_v believe_v they_o never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o because_o you_o can_v show_v they_o write_v but_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n to_o they_o that_o presuppose_v it_o divine_a and_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o papist_n and_o protestant_n do_v contain_v all_o the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o complete_a and_o total_a and_o not_o only_o a_o imperfect_a and_o a_o partial_a rule_n where_o in_o say_v all_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n he_o mean_v only_o all_o other_o after_o these_o he_o name_v presuppose_v and_o pre-believed_n but_o though_o i_o say_v catholic_n maintain_v several_a credend_n that_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o observe_v by_o christian_n after_o the_o church_n proposal_n of_o they_o as_o tradition_n apostolical_a among_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n yet_o they_o willing_o concede_fw-la that_o all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v simple_o necessary_a for_o attain_v salvation_n and_o as_o ought_v explicit_o by_o all_o man_n to_o be_v know_v in_o order_n thereto_o either_o raâione_fw-la medii_fw-la or_o pracepti_fw-la as_o the_o doctrine_n collect_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o common_a precept_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o the_o more_o necessary_a sacrament_n etc._n etc._n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n contain_v therein_o either_o in_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o or_o in_o the_o principle_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v errores_fw-la deduce_v bellarmin_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la lib_n 4._o cap._n 11._o illa_fw-la omne_fw-la scippta_fw-la sunt_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnibus_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la necessaria_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la stapleton_n relect_a princip_n doctrinae_fw-la fidei_fw-la controver_n 5._o q._n 5._o art_n 1_o doctrinam_fw-la fidei_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o fingulis_fw-la explicitè_fw-fr credendam_fw-la omnem_fw-la aut_fw-la ferè_fw-la omnem_fw-la scripto_fw-la commendarunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la the_o main_a and_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n say_v f._n fisher_n in_o bishop_n white_a pag_n 12._o be_v believe_v to_o be_v apostolical_a because_o they_o be_v write_v in_o cripture_n s._n thom_n 22._o q._n 1._o art_n 9_o primus_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la primum_fw-la art_n 10._o ad_fw-la primum_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o apostolorum_fw-la he_o mean_v câpâa_fw-la weritas_fw-la fidei_fw-la est_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la explicata_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la pervesi_fw-la homines_fw-la scripturas_fw-la peâvertunt_fw-la ideo_fw-la necessaria_fw-la fuit_fw-la temporibus_fw-la proceâencibus_fw-la explicatio_fw-la fides_fw-la contra_fw-la insurgentes_fw-la errores_fw-la therefore_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n define_v any_o thing_n concern_v such_o point_n define_v it_o out_o of_o the_o revelation_n make_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o chief_a tradition_n the_o necessity_n and_o benefit_n of_o which_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o deliver_n of_o any_o additional_a doctrine_n descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n extra_fw-la scripturas_fw-la i._n e._n such_o as_o have_v not_o their_o foundation_n at_o least_o in_o scripture_n but_o be_v the_o preserve_n and_o deliver_v of_o the_o primitive_a sense_n and_o church-explication_n of_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o many_o time_n not_o there_o write_v so_o clear_o which_o traditive_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n you_o may_v find_v make_v use_n of_o against_o arianism_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a 8._o nice_a see_v theod._n hist_o l._n 1_o c._n 8._o or_o
learned_a protestant_n consent_v with_o roman_a catholic_n 140._o catholic_n hooker_n p._n 124._o field_n l._n 1._o c._n 10._o p._n 14.15_o d._n fern._n divis_n engl._n rom._n §._o 10_o archb._n lawd_n p._n 140._o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n which_o we_o believe_v in_o our_o creed_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n in_o all_o age_n consist_v of_o pastor_n as_o well_o as_o people_n in_o external_a profession_n and_o communion_n contradistinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n when_o such_o there_o happen_v to_o be_v in_o any_o age_n see_v before_o disc_n 2._o §_o 5._o §_o 5_o 4_o they_o be_v also_o agree_v that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o this_o church-catholick_n these_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o slight_a of_o man_n 14._o man_n eph._n 4.11_o 14._o thus_o far_o they_o agree_v chap._n ii_o roman_n catholic_n further_o affirm_v 5._o that_o the_o church-guide_n at_o least_o assemble_v in_o lawful_a general_n council_n shall_v never_o err_v in_o their_o determine_a point_n of_o necessary_a faith_n §_o 6._o 6._o point_n necessary_a not_o as_o take_v only_o for_o those_o absolute_o require_v but_o all_o very_a beneficial_a to_o salvation_n §_o 9_o 7._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o they_o not_o as_o infallible_o inspire_v to_o teach_v any_o new_a but_o as_o divine_o assist_v in_o deliver_v of_o the_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n §_o 10._o 8._o that_o for_o know_v what_o or_o how_o many_o of_o former_a council_n have_v be_v lawful_o general_n or_o oblige_v a_o christian_a may_v safe_o rely_v on_o the_o most_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n §_o 11._o 9_o that_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o church_n governor_n from_o some_o council_n yet_o their_o acceptance_n of_o its_o decree_n or_o concurrence_n with_o its_o doctrine_n render_v it_o equivalent_a to_o a_o council_n general_n §_o 13._o 10._o that_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n part_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o decree_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o whole_a §_o 14._o but_o here_o the_o two_o party_n divide_v in_o their_o superstruction_n §_o 6_o for_o 5_o the_o catholic_n go_v on_o and_o affirm_v further_o that_o these_o pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n at_o least_o when_o assemble_v in_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n or_o in_o so_o general_a as_o the_o present_a time_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o several_a requisite_n of_o such_o great_a meeting_n be_v well_o capable_a of_o universal_o accept_v i_o mean_v in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v disc_n 1._o §_o 31_o 36_o 38._o and_o below_o §_o 12._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o their_o determination_n or_o teach_v of_o credend_n and_o practical_n necessary_a for_o obtain_v salvation_n and_o therefore_o that_o christian_n in_o their_o assent_v to_o such_o determination_n remain_v secure_a from_o all_o such_o error_n §_o 7_o first_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o teacher_n be_v affirm_v thus_o unerrable_a be_v 1_o because_o most_o of_o those_o place_n in_o scripture_n from_o which_o be_v gather_v the_o church_n indefectibility_n or_o inerrability_n in_o necessary_n prop._n 2._o as_o mat._n 16.18_o 18.17_o comp_n 20._o 28.20_o john_n 14.16_o 1_o tim._n 3.15_o luke_o 10.16_o eph._n 4.11_o 14._o do_v appear_v to_o relate_v more_o especial_o to_o these_o guide_n thereof_o than_o to_o the_o common_a people_n and_o 2_o because_o this_o seem_v no_o more_o than_o necessary_a since_o god_n have_v require_v nothing_o to_o be_v external_o profess_v by_o we_o as_o truth_n or_o act_v by_o we_o in_o obedience_n to_o command_v but_o what_o our_o judgement_n or_o conscience_n first_o internal_o assent_v to_o as_o truth_n and_o as_o lawful_a it_o seem_v i_o say_v no_o more_o than_o necessary_a that_o in_o the_o many_o doubt_n which_o may_v arise_v especial_o to_o the_o more_o ignorant_a sort_n both_o in_o credend_n and_o practical_o there_o be_v some_o sure_a and_o unfailing_a director_n of_o these_o our_o interior_a judgement_n herein_o as_o to_o all_o necessary_n which_o director_n in_o such_o doubt_n can_v neither_o be_v the_o scripture_n the_o sense_n of_o which_o be_v ambiguous_a unto_o we_o and_o the_o thing_n wherein_o we_o seek_v direction_n nor_o yet_o be_v the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o these_o spiritual_a matter_n but_o only_o the_o ecclesiastical_a to_o who_o guidance_n of_o soul_n also_o we_o be_v commit_v and_o enjoin_v obedience_n heb._n 13.17_o 7._o see_v before_o §_o 5._o and_o disc_n 2._o §_o 4._o chillingw_n §_o 8_o 2._o next_o the_o reason_n why_o these_o guide_n be_v affirm_v unerring_a at_o least_o when_o join_v in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v because_o one_a it_o can_v reasonable_o be_v question_v but_o that_o what_o authority_n every_o one_o of_o they_o single_o have_v from_o our_o lord_n the_o same_o all_o of_o they_o retain_v in_o this_o body_n unite_v without_o the_o need_n of_o any_o new_a commission_n from_o the_o church_n catholic_n 2_o because_o if_o there_o be_v any_o promise_n make_v to_o they_o in_o any_o capacity_n of_o indeficiency_n in_o necessary_n then_o of_o all_o manner_n or_o way_n deviceable_a wherein_o they_o may_v be_v so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o conjuncture_n of_o they_o and_o that_o the_o most_o universal_a that_o can_v be_v procure_v use_v in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o supreme_a court_n of_o appeal_n that_o they_o appear_v to_o be_v most_o capable_a thereof_o and_o least_o liable_a to_o defect_n 94._o defect_n see_v mat._n 18.17_o 20._o 1_o cor._n 5.4_o 15._o see_v below_o §._o 94._o in_o which_o the_o catholic_n be_v also_o *_o confirm_v by_o the_o apostolic_a practice_n in_o the_o act_n 6._o act_n act._n 15.2_o 6._o where_o for_o solve_v a_o great_a difficulty_n they_o call_v a_o assembly_n of_o the_o church-governor_n and_o pass_v some_o decree_n therein_o to_o which_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o their_o pastor_n stand_v oblige_v seem_v there_o to_o fortify_v their_o authority_n with_o these_o two_o expression_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancio_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la v._n 28._o and_o nobis_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d collectis_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la v._o 25._o as_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v on_o they_o at_o first_o act_n 2.1_o when_o so_o assemble_v to_o which_o assembly_n also_o the_o great_a apostle_n st._n paul_n notwithstanding_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v immediate_o reveal_v to_o he_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o confirm_v to_o other_o by_o his_o miracle_n yet_o be_v send_v by_o god_n immediate_a appointment_n for_o he_o say_v he_o go_v to_o this_o council_n by_o revelation_n gal._n 2.2_o that_o so_o his_o doctrine_n may_v both_o be_v the_o more_o authorize_v to_o his_o auditor_n and_o his_o convert_v more_o ready_o obey_v it_o and_o so_o he_o not_o run_v in_o vain_a nor_o lose_v his_o labour_n when_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v confirm_v and_o establish_v by_o this_o general_a council_n with_o which_o thus_o theodoret_n begin_v his_o epistle_n to_o leo._n si_fw-la paulus_n praeco_fw-la veritatis_fw-la tuba_fw-la sanctissimi_fw-la spiritus_fw-la ad_fw-la magnum_fw-la petrum_fw-la cucurrit_fw-la ut_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la antiochiae_fw-la de_fw-fr institutis_fw-la legalibus_fw-la contendebant_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la afferret_fw-la solutionem_fw-la multo_fw-la magis_fw-la nos_fw-la qui_fw-la abjecti_fw-la sumus_fw-la &_o pusilli_fw-la ad_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la sedem_fw-la vestram_fw-la currimus_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ulceribus_fw-la medicinam_fw-la a_o vobis_fw-la accipiamus_fw-la and_o st._n austin_n 4._o austin_n contra_fw-la faustum_n l._n 28._o c._n 4._o ipse_fw-la apostolus_fw-la paulus_n post_fw-la ascensionem_fw-la demini_fw-la de_fw-la caelum_fw-la vocatus_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la inveniret_fw-la in_o carne_fw-la apostolos_fw-la quibus_fw-la communicando_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la quibus_fw-la conferendo_fw-la evangelium_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la societatis_fw-la esse_fw-la appareret_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la illi_fw-la omnino_fw-la non_fw-la crederet_fw-la sed_fw-la cum_fw-la cognovisset_fw-la eum_fw-la hoc_fw-la annunciantem_fw-la quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la illi_fw-la annunciabant_fw-la &_o in_o eorum_fw-la communione_fw-la atque_fw-la unitate_fw-la viventem_fw-la etc._n etc._n meruit_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o again_o *_o confirm_v by_o the_o primitive_a practice_n afterward_o in_o the_o first_o general_n council_n universal_o allow_v who_o require_v assent_v under_o anathema_n to_o their_o definition_n and_o insert_v they_o as_o it_o be_v think_v meet_a into_o the_o creed_n which_o sufficient_o declare_v that_o they_o hold_v themselves_o infallible_a or_o which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o it_o actual_o unerring_a therein_o 3_o when_o any_o division_n happen_v in_o this_o collective_a body_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o some_o clergy_n
even_o in_o necessary_n if_o it_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v or_o in_o non-necessaries_a though_o it_o be_v so_o it_o follow_v that_o such_o error_n may_v be_v by_o private_a man_n discover_v and_o new_a evidence_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o new_a demonstration_n may_v appear_v against_o they_o and_o so_o upon_o the_o former_a term_n must_v be_v admit_v a_o new_a complaint_n and_o a_o new_a appeal_n to_o another_o future_a council_n for_o such_o rest_n of_o a_o former_a person_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o council_n after_o his_o evidence_n hear_v and_o disallow_v infer_v not_o a_o acquiescence_n of_o all_o other_o person_n whatever_o or_o yet_o of_o the_o same_o person_n whenever_o any_o other_o evidence_n or_o demonstration_n may_v appear_v to_o they_o either_o against_o any_o other_o definition_n of_o that_o council_n or_o even_o against_o that_o which_o other_o upon_o mistake_a ground_n question_v causeless_o for_o why_o may_v not_o one_o bring_v a_o true_a evidence_n or_o demonstration_n against_o a_o point_n and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v hear_v after_o that_o another_z or_o the_o same_o person_n have_v bring_v a_o false_a and_o so_o be_v silence_v thus_o be_v the_o free_a man_n from_o the_o law_n of_o their_o superior_n like_o the_o break_n out_o of_o water_n by_o no_o device_n afterward_o to_o be_v stop_v where_o or_o when_o we_o please_v so_o many_o evidence_n and_o demonstration_n against_o a_o corporeal_a presence_n be_v long_o ago_o present_v to_o several_a council_n &_o reject_v as_o false_a yet_o still_o new_a one_o or_o indeed_o the_o same_o be_v pretend_v to_o keep_v the_o controversy_n on_o foot_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o another_o trial_n where_o the_o judge_n may_v be_v better_o inform_v §_o 48_o after_o the_o archbishop_n mr._n stillingfleet_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o matter_n on_o this_o manner_n if_o you_o ask_v say_v he_o 539._o he_o p._n 539._o how_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v when_o error_n be_v manifest_a and_o intolerable_a and_o when_o not_o we_o here_o appeal_v to_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o concurrent_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n suppose_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o consent_n of_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n which_o certain_o will_v prevent_v the_o exorbitance_n and_o capricious_a humour_n of_o fantastical_a spirit_n which_o may_v cry_v out_o that_o the_o most_o receive_a truth_n ever_o since_o christianity_n be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v intolerable_a error_n if_o you_o be_v resolve_v far_a to_o ask_v who_o shall_v be_v judge_n what_o necessary_a reason_n or_o demonstration_n be_v his_o lordship_n tell_v you_o i_o think_v plain_a enough_o from_o hooker_n what_o be_v understand_v by_o it_o viz._n such_o as_o be_v propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v unto_o it_o and_o do_v you_o require_v any_o other_o judge_n but_o a_o man_n own_o judgement_n and_o reason_n in_o this_o case_n but_o you_o say_v other_o call_v their_o argument_n demonstration_n but_o let_v they_o submit_v to_o this_o way_n of_o trial_n and_o they_o may_v soon_o be_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v not_o still_o you_o say_v they_o will_v not_o be_v convince_v but_o will_v break_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n suppose_v they_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n for_o what_o they_o do_v but_o if_o man_n will_v be_v unreasonble_a who_o can_v help_v it_o thus_o mr._n stillingfleet_n i_o have_v set_v the_o place_n down_o at_o large_a that_o you_o may_v better_o consider_v what_o it_o amount_v to_o here_o then_o you_o see_v he_o restrain_v this_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n judgement_n of_o the_o intolerableness_n of_o such_o council_n error_n so_o that_o this_o judgement_n be_v guide_v or_o make_v 1_o according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o concurrent_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 2_o according_a to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n suppose_v scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 3_o according_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n but_o first_o methinks_v it_o be_v a_o very_a presumptuous_a thing_n for_o inferior_n to_o judge_v by_o any_o of_o these_o three_o way_n against_o a_o general_n council_n as_o if_o for_o the_o first_o these_o council_n do_v not_o guide_n themselves_o by_o the_o concurrent_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n several_a of_o which_o council_n be_v reprehend_v by_o protestant_n for_o join_v church-tradition_n with_o scripture_n itself_o as_o a_o rule_n of_o their_o proceed_v and_o again_o as_o if_o the_o concurrent_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v either_o for_o what_o be_v find_v to_o be_v general_o hold_v by_o it_o or_o what_o be_v find_v not_o to_o be_v so_o condemn_v by_o it_o according_a to_o the_o protestant_n or_o mr._n stillingfleet_n principle_n certain_o clear_v any_o thing_n from_o be_v a_o intolerable_a error_n when_o as_o they_o hold_v such_o concurrent_a sense_n may_v err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a and_o again_o hold_v that_o among_o these_o not_o fundamental_o may_v be_v intolerable-error_n see_v before_o §_o 25._o next_o as_o if_o for_o the_o 2_o d._n general_a council_n do_v not_o use_v the_o same_o common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n and_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o a_o private_a man_n do_v for_o discern_a error_n or_o as_o if_o he_o by_o his_o common_a reason_n paramount_n can_v discern_v where_o their_o common_a reason_n mistake_v and_o that_o manifest_o and_o intolerable_o or_o as_o if_o for_o the_o 3_o d._n in_o these_o council_n be_v not_o a_o consent_n of_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n or_o he_o know_v other_o man_n more_o learned_a than_o they_o or_o know_v learned_a man_n better_a than_o they_o §_o 49_o but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v yet_o since_o the_o exorbitant_a and_o capricious_a humour_n of_o some_o fantastical_a man_n may_v pretend_v any_o of_o these_o antiquity_n common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n ground_v on_o scripture_n or_o the_o learned_a on_o his_o side_n against_o a_o general_n council_n most_o false_o and_o silly_o of_o which_o who_o see_v not_o many_o example_n therefore_o here_o it_o will_v not_o be_v enough_o for_o any_o to_o say_v this_o but_o they_o be_v in_o all_o reason_n to_o show_v some_o evidence_n or_o demonstration_n that_o these_o 3._o or_o any_o of_o they_o be_v for_o they_o and_o then_o the_o same_o question_n return_v again_o on_o mr._n stillingfleet_n who_o shall_v judge_v of_o this_o pretend_a evidence_n or_o demonstration_n of_o they_o and_o he_o both_z takes_z notice_n of_o it_o here_o and_o answer_v it_o if_o i_o understand_v he_o aright_o thus_o that_o that_o man_n be_v own_o reason_n that_o pretend_v they_o be_v also_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o they_o for_o if_o a_o demonstration_n be_v such_o as_o be_v propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v to_o it_o than_o his_o mind_n also_o that_o propose_v it_o be_v thus_o convince_v by_o it_o and_o so_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o demonstration_n and_o do_v you_o require_v say_v he_o any_o other_o judge_n but_o a_o man_n be_v own_o judgement_n and_o reason_n in_o this_o case_n but_o such_o collection_n be_v very_o faulty_a because_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o demonstration_n such_o as_o can_v be_v make_v in_o divine_a matter_n do_v always_o convince_v the_o mind_n or_o effect_v its_o full_a assent_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o that_o demonstration_n only_o do_v this_o but_o so_o also_o do_v many_o other_o false_a though_o specious_a argument_n i_o mean_v so_o convince_v the_o mind_n of_o some_o as_o to_o produce_v a_o full_a assent_n free_a from_o doubt_v though_o not_o from_o err_v but_o to_o warrant_v any_o thing_n a_o right_a demonstration_n according_a to_o the_o former_a definition_n of_o it_o not_o one_o but_o all_o man_n reason_n that_o hear_v it_o must_v assent_v to_o it_o and_o then_o among_o these_o the_o reason_n also_o of_o our_o superior_n and_o then_o any_o one_o man_n reason_n as_o to_o a_o demonstration_n be_v sufficient_o disprove_v whenever_o all_o other_o reasonable_a man_n to_o who_o it_o be_v relate_v judge_v not_o the_o same_o with_o he_o but_o if_o some_o man_n reason_n when_o at_o any_o time_n oppose_v the_o more_o common_a may_v be_v pretend_v a_o sufficient_a judge_n of_o demonstration_n then_o we_o stick_v still_o at_o our_o former_a question_n how_o will_v this_o prevent_v the_o exorbitance_n and_o capricious_a humour_n of_o fantastical_a spirit_n and_o how_o will_v not_o some_o break_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n still_o suppose_v that_o they_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n for_o what_o they_o say_v when_o they_o have_v not_o therefore_o after_o many_o wind_n his_o utmost_a answer_n be_v if_o man_n will_v be_v unreasonable_a who_o can_v help_v it_o and_o so_o mr._n
*_o a_o government_n constitute_v by_o god_n found_v and_o compact_a in_o a_o due_a subordination_n to_o keep_v all_o its_o member_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n from_o be_v toss_v too_o and_o fro_o with_o several_a doctrine_n eph._n 4.11_o 13_o 14_o 16._o and_o *_o perpetual_o to_o the_o world_n end_n assist_v with_o the_o paraclet_n send_v from_o our_o ascend_v lord_n to_o give_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n jo._n 14.16_o 26._o *_o which_o governor_n who_o so_o resist_v be_v in_o this_o render_v self-condemned_n tit._n 3.11_o last_o *_o s._n peter_n entitle_v to_o some_o special_a presidence_n over_o this_o whole_a church_n by_o those_o text_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la mat._n 16._o and_o rogavi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la tu_fw-la confirma_fw-la fratres_fw-la luk._n 12.2.32_o and_o pass_v oves_fw-la meas_fw-la jo._n 21.10_o compare_v with_o gal._n 2.7_o where_o thus_o s._n paul_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n be_v commit_v to_o i_o as_o to_o peter_n say_v he_o relate_v to_o the_o pasce_fw-la in_o s._n john_n be_v commit_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o circumcision_n where_o it_o be_v observable_a also_o that_o then_o be_v the_o circumcision_n the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o peter_n st._n peter_n commission_n over_o christ_n sheep_n be_v ordinary_a give_v by_o our_o lord_n here_o on_o earth_n who_o also_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o first_o convert_v and_o admit_v of_o the_o gentile_n into_o this_o fold_n 7_o fold_n act._n 10_o 34-11_a 2-15_a 7_o st._n pawles_n over_o the_o gentile_n extraordinary_a give_v by_o our_o lord_n from_o heaven_n 6.-22.17.21_a heaven_n act._n 9_o 6.-22.17.21_a and_o this_o commission_n manifest_v to_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o supereminent_a grace_n of_o convert_v soul_n and_o of_o miracle_n that_o be_v bestow_v upon_o he_o gal._n 2.8.9_o like_o to_o that_o more_o eminent_o give_v to_o st._n peter_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o act._n 9.40_o and_o 20.10_o act._n 5.15_o and_o 19.12_o 5.5_o and_z 13_o 11-2.41.4.4_a and_o rom._n 15_o 17_o 18_o 19_o compare_v and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v gal._n 2._o that_o the_o apostle_n see_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o circumcision_n commit_v to_o peter_n argue_v they_o see_v it_o commit_v to_o peter_n in_o some_o such_o special_a or_o superintendent_n manner_n as_o not_o also_o to_o they_o §_o 68_o again_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o constitution_n and_o temper_n and_o manner_n of_o practice_n of_o this_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n from_o the_o very_a first_o we_o find_v it_o act_v as_o st._n paul_n direct_v archbishop_n titus_n c._n 2.15_o cum_fw-la omni_fw-la imperio_fw-la ut_fw-la nemo_fw-la contemnat_fw-la severe_o eject_v and_o deliver_v to_o satan_n after_o some_o admonition_n those_o that_o be_v heterodox_n and_o heretical_a 11.-1.11_a heretical_a 1_o tim._n 1.20_o th._n 3_o 11.-1.11_a in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n a_o council_n call_v and_o the_o stile_n of_o it_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la and_o nobis_fw-la collectis_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la 15.25.28_o unum_fw-la act._n 15.25.28_o and_o if_o here_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o infallible_a apostle_n have_v some_o hand_n therein_o yet_o if_o we_o look_v low_a we_o find_v still_o the_o same_o authority_n maintain_v and_o exercise_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o latter_a age_n and_o especial_o by_o that_o of_o the_o 4_o the_o age_n when_o flour_v sh_v under_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n now_o become_v christian_n if_o full_o enjoy_v as_o also_o the_o present_n do_v in_o these_o western_a part_n the_o free_a exercise_n of_o its_o law_n and_o discipline_n §_o 69_o in_o all_o these_o time_n then_o 1_o st_z we_o find_v the_o unquestioned_a church_n catholic_n of_o those_o day_n firm_o join_v with_o and_o adhere_v to_o that_o which_o be_v then_o ordinary_o style_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o st._n peter_n chair_n and_o with_o the_o bishop_n call_v his_o successor_n as_o if_o matt._n 16.18_o and_o luke_n 22.23_o be_v a_o prophecy_n thereof_o though_o some_o other_o of_o the_o great_a patriarch_n stand_v not_o so_o firm_a but_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o those_o day_n relinquish_v and_o cut_v they_o off_o we_o find_v the_o same_o church_n when_o any_o opposition_n of_o its_o doctrine_n happen_v as_o it_o be_v then_o exercise_v with_o the_o high_a controversy_n that_o ever_o trouble_a the_o church_n take_v very_o much_o authority_n upon_o itself_o assemble_v itself_o in_o a_o general_n body_n make_v new_a definition_n as_o necessity_n require_v anathematise_v all_o dissenter_n insert_v as_o it_o see_v meet_v for_o the_o more_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o they_o by_o all_o its_o subject_n some_o of_o its_o decision_n in_o the_o church_n creed_n which_o be_v by_o it_o much_o enlarge_v from_o what_o they_o be_v former_o we_o find_v it_o declare_v this_o also_o in_o the_o creed_n concern_v itself_o and_o enjoin_v it_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o christian_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n continue_v always_o holy_a apostolical_a preserve_n their_o rule_n tradition_n and_o doctrine_n and_o one_o indivisa_fw-la in_o se_fw-la unite_a in_o its_o say_v and_o communion_n and_o divisa_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la aliis_fw-la distinct_a from_o all_o other_o who_o she_o declare_v heretical_a or_o schismatical_a §_o 70_o 2._o again_o we_o find_v it_o by_o such_o definition_n put_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o belief_n of_o they_o exact_v sufficient_o declare_v also_o 2._o 2._o that_o it_o hold_v itself_o to_o be_v i_o say_v not_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v against_o which_o only_a perhaps_o misunderstand_v his_o adversary_n mr._n stillingfleet_n dispute_v 558._o dispute_v p._n 558._o infallible_a or_o actual_o unerring_a in_o they_o thus_o much_o be_v clear_a i_o say_v concern_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o her_o general_a council_n of_o those_o time_n that_o they_o hold_v themselves_o infallible_a in_o the_o thing_n they_o define_v and_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o veracity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o her_o unite_a governor_n in_o what_o she_o then_o profess_v as_o of_o other_o thing_n so_o of_o herself_o can_v obtain_v no_o belief_n with_o some_o protestant_n either_o from_o the_o witness_n that_o church-tradition_n ground_v at_o first_o on_o miracle_n or_o that_o the_o scripture_n or_o some_o other_o sufficient_a evidence_n in_o point_n of_o reason_n 8._o reason_n see_v before_o §._o 8._o which_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 559._o stillingfleet_n p._n 559._o be_v content_v with_o gives_z to_z it_o of_o which_o see_v below_o §_o 87._o etc._n etc._n yet_o protestant_n must_v grant_v that_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n which_o or_o where_o ever_o it_o be_v shall_v it_o profess_v itself_o infallible_a err_v now_o only_a the_o same_o error_n which_o the_o ancient_a church-catholick_n do_v before_o it_o and_o if_o here_o it_o be_v think_v that_o this_o may_v qualify_v some_o thing_n concern_v the_o former_a church_n that_o by_o this_o way_n it_o declare_v not_o itself_o infallible_a universal_o but_o only_o in_o those_o thing_n it_o define_v so_o i_o say_v neither_o do_v the_o church-catholick_n of_o the_o present_a age_n profess_v herself_o infallible_a save_v in_o her_o definition_n nor_o require_v she_o of_o her_o definition_n any_o other_o belief_n than_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v of_o she_o nor_o matter_n it_o whether_o this_o certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o definition_n arise_v from_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n of_o such_o point_n define_v or_o from_o our_o lord_n promise_v that_o in_o her_o definition_n she_o shall_v not_o err_v see_v before_o §_o 10._o to_o proceed_v §_o 71_o 3._o we_o find_v it_o *_o declare_v those_o heretic_n who_o oppose_v any_o of_o those_o definition_n and_o expel_v they_o from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n most_o strict_a by_o synodical_a and_o communicatory_a letter_n in_o preserve_v in_o all_o point_v once_o define_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o most_o careful_o separate_v from_o any_o person_n suspect_v of_o any_o heterodoxness_n or_o division_n from_o it_o *_o proceed_v in_o its_o censure_n not_o only_o against_o some_o private_a person_n but_o against_o church_n against_o bishop_n against_o patriarch_n themselves_o yet_o such_o as_o then_o also_o fail_v not_o to_o pretend_v a_o dutiful_a continuance_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o former_a age_n and_o appeal_v to_o the_o former_a short_a creed_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n such_o authority_n the_o church_n fallible_a or_o infallible_a then_o presume_v to_o use_v cum_fw-la omni_fw-la imperio_fw-la and_o punish_v all_o contempt_n §_o 72_o if_o we_o look_v next_o on_o the_o two_o present_a body_n or_o combination_n of_o church_n that_o flourish_n at_o this_o day_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n church_n 2._o the_o face_n of_o
at_o last_o convert_v whether_o it_o i_o say_v now_o after_o a_o 150_o year_n continuance_n have_v make_v any_o progress_n suitable_a to_o such_o a_o effect_n as_o be_v the_o reduce_n of_o all_o nation_n to_o its_o profession_n or_o rather_o whether_o after_o it_o have_v make_v a_o sudden_a increase_n at_o 1_o st_z as_o new_a thing_n take_v most_o and_o infancy_n grow_v fast_o it_o do_v not_o seem_v already_o long_o ago_o to_o be_v past_o its_o full_a growth_n and_o now_o rather_o decline_v and_o wither_v and_o lose_v ground_n in_o many_o place_n where_o it_o be_v former_o well_o root_v whilst_o that_o antichrist_n which_o it_o promise_v to_o destroy_v acquire_v more_o strength_n and_o daily_o enlarge_v his_o dominion_n to_o which_o i_o may_v add_v *_o whether_o since_o protestancy_n be_v divide_v into_o so_o many_o sect_n sever_v under_o so_o many_o differ_v secular_a head_n the_o nation_n at_o length_n convert_v by_o they_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v by_o some_o to_o the_o purity_n yet_o will_v not_o still_o in_o general_a want_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o to_o return_v all_o this_o authority_n we_o find_v one_o present_a body_n use_v now_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v ancient_o and_o among_o other_o thing_n this_o body_n also_o entitle_v itself_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_n church_n still_o which_o stand_v invest_v with_o that_o authority_n that_o our_o lord_n bestow_v on_o it_o and_o which_o the_o former_a church_n practise_v then_o see_v that_o all_o other_o christian_a society_n do_v renounce_v and_o not_o pretend_v at_o all_o to_o such_o a_o authority_n i_o mean_v the_o require_v from_o their_o subject_n a_o assent_n and_o submission_n of_o judgement_n to_o their_o decree_n as_o infallible_a in_o all_o necessary_a faith_n declare_v heretic_n those_o that_o oppose_v their_o doctrine_n and_o schismatic_n that_o relinquish_v their_o communion_n and_o question_v this_o other_o church_n also_o for_o use_v it_o it_o follow_v that_o either_o this_o must_v be_v the_o sole_a church-catholick_n that_o thus_o bear_v witness_n to_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v so_o or_o that_o what_o ever_o church_n beside_o pretend_v itself_o catholic_n do_v not_o exercise_n or_o own_o that_o just_a power_n and_o those_o privilege_n with_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v endow_v it_o we_o find_v further_o this_o present_a church_n very_o vigilant_a and_o zealous_a in_o vindicate_v the_o honour_n and_o authority_n the_o custom_n the_o decree_n of_o former_a church_n and_o pretend_v what_o ever_o in_o truth_n it_o do_v most_o strict_o to_o follow_v its_o footstep_n extol_v the_o father_n number_v allow_v and_o challenge_v the_o council_n as_o if_o it_o think_v they_o most_o advantageous_a on_o its_o side_n and_o carry_v its_o self_n to_o this_o old_a mother_n with_o such_o expression_n of_o affection_n as_o if_o it_o only_o be_v her_o true_a daughter_n therefore_o conjoin_v the_o tradition_n of_o former_a church_n interpret_n scripture_n together_o with_o the_o text_n thereof_o for_o the_o steady_a guide_n of_o its_o proceed_n in_o establish_v truth_n and_o convince_a heresy_n and_o profess_v to_o handle_v thing_n controvert_v conduct_v controvert_v council_n trident_n sess_n 18._o salu._n conduct_v secundum_fw-la sacram_fw-la scripturam_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la probata_fw-la concilia_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la consensum_fw-la &_o sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la authoritates_fw-la we_o find_v it_o with_o the_o same_o zeal_n celebrate_v a_o honourable_a memory_n of_o the_o father_n ancient_a martyr_n confessor_n and_o doctor_n in_o its_o public_a liturgy_n insert_v therein_o both_o their_o traditionary_a comment_n on_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o a_o abridgement_n of_o their_o holy_a life_n there_o praise_v god_n for_o their_o pious_a example_n and_o provoke_v her_o present_a child_n to_o a_o emulation_n of_o their_o virtue_n whilst_o another_o party_n in_o its_o pretend_v a_o reformation_n to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o in_o its_o new_a service_n expunge_v both_o the_o lection_n take_v out_o of_o these_o father_n and_o the_o narrative_a of_o their_o life_n we_o find_v it_o *_o retain_v the_o same_o public_a service_n of_o the_o mass_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o former_a age_n as_o its_o adversary_n confess_v missae_fw-la confess_v dâ_n field_n p._n 188._o chemnit_fw-la exam._n conc._n trid._n part_n 2._o the_o canone_o missae_fw-la for_o this_o 1000_o year_n i.e._n from_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n if_o not_o without_o some_o small_a addition_n of_o something_o new_a yet_o without_o change_n of_o what_o be_v the_o former_a and_o *_o much_o resemble_v the_o visage_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n especial_o that_o after_o constantine_n when_o by_o the_o more_o copious_a write_n of_o those_o flourish_a time_n we_o come_v better_a to_o discern_v that_o church_n complexion_n in_o its_o altar_n and_o a_o quotidian_a sacrifice_n in_o its_o frequency_n of_o public_a assembly_n and_o devotion_n solemn_a observance_n of_o feast_n vigil_n and_o fast_n gravity_n and_o magnificence_n of_o its_o ceremony_n in_o its_o pretention_n of_o miracle_n and_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o several_a of_o its_o member_n in_o its_o high_a veneration_n of_o the_o celestial_a favourite_n who_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o daily_a communication_n by_o commemorate_n the_o saint_n depart_v with_o the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o in_o the_o honour_n do_v to_o their_o holy_a relic_n in_o its_o charitable_a office_n perform_v for_o those_o other_o more_o imperfect_a faithful_a soul_n who_o condition_n in_o the_o next_o world_n it_o conceive_v betterable_a by_o its_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n in_o its_o distinction_n of_o sin_n and_o use_v of_o its_o key_n towards_o great_a offender_n in_o retirement_n from_o the_o world_n for_o a_o near_a converse_n with_o god_n and_o the_o free_a exercise_n of_o meditation_n and_o devotion_n in_o its_o variety_n of_o religious_a order_n votary_n and_o fraternity_n in_o its_o advance_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o evangelical_n council_n its_o high_a esteem_n *_o of_o voluntary_a poverty_n i._n e._n relinquish_a all_o particular_a propriety_n and_o enjoy_v only_a necessary_n in_o common_a *_o of_o virginity_n and_o continency_n and_o *_o of_o yield_v a_o undispute_a obedience_n in_o licitis_fw-la to_o all_o the_o law_n and_o command_n of_o a_o superior_a in_o the_o single_a life_n and_o sequestration_n from_o worldly_a encumbrance_n of_o its_o clergy_n oblige_v to_o a_o daily_a task_n of_o long_a devotion_n and_o purity_n of_o conscience_n and_o corporal_a abstinence_n suitable_a to_o their_o attendance_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o there_o daily_o or_o very_o frequent_o offer_v the_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o satisfactory_a passion_n and_o comunicate_v his_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o like_a relation_n with_o those_o of_o all_o past_a age_n concern_v the_o eminent_a virtue_n shine_v in_o and_o divine_a favour_n bestow_v on_o those_o holy_a person_n who_o have_v live_v in_o its_o communion_n their_o great_a austerity_n and_o mortification_n exstafy_v vision_n prediction_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n which_o story_n if_o they_o be_v all_o suppose_a lie_n and_o fiction_n and_o hypocrisy_n all_o i_o say_v or_o most_o of_o they_o for_o that_o some_o counterfeit_n will_v mingle_v themselves_o among_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o question_n yet_o such_o lie_n be_v also_o find_v in_o all_o age_n even_o from_o the_o apostolical_a time_n nor_o be_v the_o present_a age_n more_o guilty_a of_o they_o than_o the_o precedent_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o compare_v the_o story_n relate_v by_o s._n austin_n 8._o austin_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la l._n 22._o c._n 8._o the_o saint_n live_v write_v by_o s._n jerome_n gregory_n nyssen_n theodoret_n severus_n paulinus_n palladius_n gregory_n the_o great_a gregory_n of_o tours_n bede_n bonaventure_n bernard_n and_o other_o ancient_a author_n with_o the_o modern_a whilst_o all_o other_o religion_n meanwhile_o have_v such_o a_o disparity_n to_o antiquity_n that_o in_o they_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v at_o least_o feign_v but_o indeed_o do_v not_o many_o of_o these_o story_n contain_v a_o certain_a truth_n it_o can_v be_v imagine_v that_o so_o many_o person_n repute_v of_o great_a sanctity_n and_o devotion_n and_o several_a of_o they_o contemporary_a to_o those_o who_o life_n they_o record_v shall_v have_v write_v they_o with_o so_o full_a a_o testimony_n to_o many_o thing_n not_o as_o hear_v of_o other_o but_o see_v by_o themselves_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o its_o adherent_n so_o persevere_v in_o the_o step_n of_o antiquity_n thus_o grotius_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o votum_fw-la pro_fw-la pace_n give_v account_n there_o of_o his_o study_n in_o read_v the_o father_n collegi_fw-la say_v he_o quae_fw-la essent_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la veterum_fw-la testimonio_fw-la
&_o manentibus_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la diem_fw-la vestigiis_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la &_o perseveranter_fw-la essent_fw-la tradita_fw-la videbam_fw-la ea_fw-la manere_fw-la in_o illâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la quae_fw-la romanae_fw-la connectitur_fw-la last_o we_o find_v it_o a_o body_n general_o profess_v against_o any_o reformation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o former_a church-catholick_n of_o any_o age_n whatsoever_o and_o claim_v no_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n to_o itself_o for_o the_o present_a which_o it_o allow_v not_o also_o to_o the_o church_n in_o all_o former_a time_n this_o be_v the_o general_a character_n of_o one_o combination_n of_o the_o church_n in_o present_a be_v the_o other_o present_a combination_n of_o church_n in_o the_o western_a world_n church_n world_n 76._o the_o face_n of_o the_o present_a protestant_a church_n we_o find_v to_o be_v a_o body_n of_o much_o different_a constitution_n and_o complexion_n *_o much_o of_o its_o doctrine_n public_a service_n and_o discipline_n confess_v vary_v from_o the_o time_n immediate_o precede_v it_o consist_v of_o those_o who_o acknowledge_v themselves_o or_o their_o ancestor_n once_o member_n of_o the_o former_a and_o that_o have_v as_o they_o say_v upon_o a_o unjust_a submission_n require_v of_o they_o yet_o this_o no_o more_o than_o their_o forefather_n pay_v depart_v from_o it_o *_o this_o new_a church_n only_o one_o person_n at_o the_o first_o afterward_o grow_v to_o a_o number_n and_o protect_v against_o the_o spiritual_a by_o a_o secular_a power_n and_o so_o we_o find_v it_o subsist_v and_o act_v at_o this_o day_n under_o many_o several_a secular_a head_n independent_a of_o one_o another_o without_o who_o consent_n and_o approbation_n first_o obtain_v what_o if_o such_o head_n shall_v be_v a_o heretic_n it_o stand_v oblige_v not_o at_o any_o time_n to_o make_v or_o promulgate_v and_o enforce_v upon_o its_o subject_n any_o definition_n or_o decree_n what_o ever_o in_o spiritual_a matter_n 19_o matter_n see_v 25._o hent_n 8._o c._n 19_o as_o to_o its_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n we_o find_v it_o take_v away_o the_o high_a subordination_n therein_o that_o be_v former_o and_o affirm_v a_o independent_a coordination_n as_o to_o incur_v guilt_n of_o schism_n some_o of_o all_o primate_fw-la other_o of_o all_o bishop_n very_o prejudical_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n we_o find_v it_o stand_v also_o disunite_v from_o st._n peter_n chair_n yet_o this_o a_o much_o small_a body_n still_o than_o that_o which_o be_v join_v thereto_o and_o therefore_o in_o a_o general_n council_n suppose_v all_o the_o member_n thereof_o to_o continue_v in_o and_o to_o deliver_v there_o their_o present_a judgement_n touch_v point_n in_o dispute_n such_o as_o must_v needs_o be_v out_o vote_v by_o the_o other_o and_o hence_o by_o the_o law_n of_o council_n in_o duty_n oblige_v to_o submit_v and_o conform_v to_o it_o neither_o seem_v there_o any_o relief_n to_o this_o party_n to_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o accession_n to_o their_o side_n of_o any_o vote_n from_o the_o church_n more_o remote_a i_o mean_v the_o greek_a or_o other_o eastern_a church_n if_o we_o will_v suppose_v these_o also_o to_o persist_v in_o their_o present_a judgement_n who_o doctrine_n in_o the_o chief_a controversy_n be_v show_v etc._n show_v §._o 158._o etc._n etc._n to_o conspire_v yet_o without_o any_o late_a confederacy_n with_o that_o of_o this_o great_a body_n which_o these_o reform_a church_n have_v desert_v §_o 77_o we_o find_v also_o this_o new_a combination_n of_o church_n in_o stead_n of_o pretend_v to_o assume_v to_o itself_o whatsoever_o the_o facto_fw-la it_o do_v of_o which_o see_v more_o in_o the_o follow_a chap._n §_o 83._o etc._n etc._n in_o its_o synod_n the_o same_o authority_n in_o state_v matter_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o ancient_a council_n have_v use_v 1._o zealous_o contend_v that_o council_n be_v fallible_a in_o their_o determination_n for_o so_o it_o support_v the_o privilege_n of_o use_v its_o own_o judgement_n against_o superior_a synod_n 2._o and_o according_o teach_v its_o subject_n that_o itself_o also_o be_v fallible_a in_o what_o it_o propose_v 3_o and_o engage_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v by_o its_o authority_n upon_o trial_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o search_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o examine_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n every_o one_o for_o himself_o and_o then_o rely_v final_o on_o that_o sentence_n which_o their_o own_o reason_n give_v 4._o allow_v also_o their_o dissent_n to_o what_o it_o teach_v till_o it_o prove_v to_o they_o its_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o when_o ever_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o themselves_o from_o thence_o can_v evidence_n the_o contrary_a therefore_o it_o be_v also_o more_o spare_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v so_o of_o which_o see_v more_o below_o §_o 85._o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o article_n of_o its_o faith_n and_o religion_n especial_o positive_a many_o of_o its_o divine_n hold_v a_o union_n of_o faith_n requisite_a only_o in_o some_o necessary_n and_o then_o contract_a necessary_n again_o in_o a_o narrow_a compass_n than_o the_o creed_n and_o because_o it_o allow_v of_o no_o judge_n sufficient_a to_o clear_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o controversy_n 38._o controversy_n see_v 2._o disc_n §._o 38._o therefore_o hold_v most_o controversy_n in_o religion_n not_o necessary_a at_o all_o to_o be_v determine_v and_o much_o recommend_v a_o union_n of_o charity_n there_o where_o can_v be_v have_v a_o union_n of_o belief_n we_o find_v they_o also_o restrain_v heresy_n to_o point_n fundamental_a and_o then_o leave_v fundamental_o uncertain_a and_o vary_v as_o to_o several_a person_n few_o point_v fundamental_a to_o some_o more_o to_o other_o and_o this_o no_o way_n knowable_a by_o the_o church_n again_o make_v schism_n only_o such_o a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n as_o be_v causeless_a and_o then_o this_o thing_n when_o causeless_a to_o be_v judge_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o appear_v by_o those_o who_o depart_v by_o such_o notion_n leave_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n undiscernible_a by_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o unseparable_a from_o it_o and_o therefore_o many_o seem_a to_o understand_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_n apostolic_a church_n in_o the_o creed_n to_o signify_v nothing_o else_o than_o the_o total_a complex_fw-la of_o all_o church_n whatever_o profess_v christianity_n unless_o those_o person_n be_v shut_v out_o who_o by_o impose_v some_o restraint_n of_o opinion_n for_o enjoy_v their_o communion_n be_v say_v to_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o a_o separation_n according_o we_o find_v this_o body_n spread_v its_o lap_n wide_o to_o several_a sect_n by_o which_o it_o acquire_v the_o more_o considerable_a magnitude_n and_o receive_v or_o tolerate_v in_o its_o communion_n many_o opposite_a party_n of_o very_a different_a principle_n and_o hence_o as_o it_o grow_v elder_a so_o daily_o branch_a more_o and_o more_o into_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o multiply_v into_o more_o and_o more_o subdivision_n of_o sect_n be_v destitute_a of_o any_o cure_n thereof_o both_o by_o its_o necessary_a indulgement_n of_o that_o call_v christian_a liberty_n and_o allowance_n of_o private_a judgement_n and_o also_o by_o the_o absolute_a independency_n one_o on_o another_o of_o so_o many_o several_a supreme_a governor_n both_o the_o secular_a and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a who_o model_n and_o order_n diverse_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o as_o the_o other_o church_n in_o her_o grow_a elder_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o particular_a in_o her_o faith_n and_o with_o new_a definition_n and_o canon_n fence_v it_o round_o about_o according_a as_o new_a error_n will_v break_v in_o upon_o it_o further_o we_o find_v several_a among_o its_o leader_n much_o offend_v 1._o §._o 78._o n._n 1._o that_o church-tradition_n shall_v be_v bring_v in_o together_o with_o scripture_n as_o a_o authentic_a witness_n or_o arbitrator_n in_o try_v controversy_n see_v the_o protestant_n condition_n propose_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 366_o trent_n soave_fw-it p._n 642-344_a 366_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o the_o council_n and_o all_o humane_a authority_n exclude_v or_o admit_v with_o a_o condition_n fundantes_n see_v in_o s._n scripture_n take_v great_a pain_n to_o *_o discover_v the_o error_n of_o the_o father_n and_o their_o contradict_v of_o one_o another_o see_v daille_n uray_fw-fr usage_n de_fw-fr peres_n and_o *_o to_n show_v several_a of_o the_o work_v impute_v to_o they_o and_o admit_v by_o r._n catholic_n supposititious_a and_o forge_v see_v cook_n and_o perkins_n and_o rivet_n censure_n take_v no_o less_o pain_n to_o show_v the_o non_fw-fr necessity_n of_o council_n in_o general_n to_o number_v the_o many_o difficulty_n how_o to_o be_v assure_v which_o of_o they_o be_v legal_a and_o oblige_a what_o their_o decree_n and_o what_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o to_o discover_v the_o flaw_n &_o deficiency_n in_o
but_o now_o say_v that_o particular_a church_n or_o provincial_a synod_n may_v be_v certain_a of_o something_o as_o truth_n where_o either_o scripture_n say_v it_o or_o a_o necessary_a deduction_n collect_v it_o or_o tradition_n deliver_v it_o such_o as_o be_v general_o undisputed_a and_o unquestioned_a and_o may_v require_v from_o their_o subject_n a_o absolute_a assent_n and_o that_o upon_o excommunication_n or_o anathema_n to_o all_o such_o article_n of_o religion_n as_o be_v either_o define_v or_o otherwise_o agree_v on_o by_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o that_o herein_o they_o have_v the_o same_o infallibility_n as_o the_o catholic_n and_o their_o subject_n be_v or_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v the_o tenant_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n though_o otherwise_o fallible_a may_v require_v not_o a_o conditional_a but_o a_o absolute_a assent_n to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n because_o she_o in_o these_o be_v infallible_a if_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v so_o thus_o much_o say_v concern_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o submission_n require_v of_o her_o son_n by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o her_o article_n of_o religion_n i_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o 2d_o thing_n propose_v before_o §_o 66._o the_o many_o difficulty_n and_o objection_n urge_v against_o a_o infallible_a church-authority_n chap._n viii_o solution_n of_o several_a question_n concern_v a_o infallible_a live_a guide_n 1._o q._n from_o what_o we_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o council_n be_v infallible_a since_o neither_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v dispute_v nor_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n who_o err_a be_v the_o thing_n question_v can_v give_v such_o assurance_n §_o 86._o 2._o q._n from_o whence_o general_n council_n receive_v their_o infallibility_n such_o promise_n if_o make_v at_o all_o be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o church_n diffusive_a and_o not_o delegable_a by_o this_o church_n to_o other_o or_o if_o so_o no_o such_o delegation_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n appear_v to_o have_v be_v beforehand_o make_v at_o all_o or_o any_o general_n council_n §_o 91._o 3._o q._n how_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n be_v necessary_a or_o serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n without_o which_o council_n the_o church_n subsist_v for_o several_a age_n most_o orthodox_n §_o 98._o 4._o q._n how_o lawful_a general_n council_n which_o experience_n have_v show_v to_o have_v contradict_v one_o another_o can_v be_v all_o infallible_a §_o 100_o 5._o q._n lawful_a general_n council_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v liable_a to_o error_n in_o some_o thing_n how_o christian_n can_v be_v assure_v concern_v any_o particular_a point_n that_o in_o it_o these_o council_n do_v not_o err_v §_o 101._o 6._o q._n whilst_o such_o council_n be_v suppose_v infallible_a how_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o can_v any_o error_n of_o they_o be_v rectify_v §_o 102._o 7._o q._n whether_o such_o council_n only_o when_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o all_o when_o yet_o unconfirmed_a by_o he_o be_v infallible_a §_o 104._o 8._o q._n how_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n can_v any_o way_n concur_v to_o such_o council_n non-erring_a since_o if_o it_o err_v before_o it_o do_v so_o still_o though_o he_o approve_v it_o but_o if_o orthodox_n before_o it_o be_v so_o still_o he_o not_o approve_v it_o §_o 105._o 9_o q._n in_o which_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o council_n this_o infallibility_n lie_v for_o if_o in_o one_o of_o they_o the_o other_o be_v needless_a if_o in_o both_o then_o either_o of_o they_o sufficient_a such_o quality_n be_v indivisible_a and_o without_o integral_a part_n §_o 106._o §_o 86_o against_o a_o live_a infallible_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o controverfy_v in_o necessary_a matter_n of_o religion_n question_n solution_n of_o several_a question_n assert_v above_o in_o this_o discourse_n by_o catholic_n and_o the_o church_n governor_n in_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n affirm_v to_o be_v so_o many_o difficulty_n be_v urge_v and_o some_o with_o much_o subtlety_n which_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o may_v be_v with_o as_o much_o plainness_n satisfactory_o remove_v 1_o then_o 1._o q._n 1._o it_o be_v ask_v 558._o ask_v see_v mr._n stillings_n p._n 409_o 539_o 558._o whence_o can_v arise_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n to_o christian_n that_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v infallible_a since_o it_o can_v arise_v *_o from_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n because_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o council_n err_v in_o such_o a_o decree_n till_o this_o thing_n first_o be_v state_v to_o we_o whether_o they_o be_v infallible_a nor_o 2_o *_o from_o the_o scripture_n because_o this_o be_v to_o make_v the_o scripture_n the_o sole_a judge_n of_o this_o great_a controversy_n which_o catholic_n deny_v to_o be_v the_o sole_a judge_n of_o any_o and_o if_o scripture_n may_v decide_v this_o controversy_n it_o may_v as_o well_o all_o other_o for_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o sense_n be_v more_o controvert_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o urge_v concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n if_o therefore_o these_o may_v be_v understand_v without_o a_o live_n and_o infallible_a judge_n so_o as_o that_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o their_o true_a sense_n then_o why_o not_o all_o other_o which_o concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n who_o sense_n be_v far_o less_o dispute_v than_o of_o these_o §_o 87_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v one_a that_o scripture_n though_o it_o can_v proper_o be_v a_o judge_n to_o decide_v any_o dispute_n about_o its_o sense_n yet_o may_v be_v a_o rule_n plain_a and_o free_a enough_o from_o obscurity_n in_o its_o sense_n there_o where_o some_o corrupt_a and_o interest_v judgement_n may_v question_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v think_v real_o ambiguous_a where_o ever_o dispute_v or_o controvert_v and_o that_o though_o the_o clearness_n of_o this_o rule_n can_v never_o be_v pretend_v or_o such_o argument_n in_o reason_n make_v use_v of_o on_o that_o side_n where_o a_o few_o do_v oppose_v either_o the_o common_a traditional_a sense_n of_o former_a age_n or_o of_o the_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o present_a age_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o sense_n thereof_o that_o be_v give_v by_o the_o common_a judgement_n either_o of_o former_a or_o present_a time_n may_v be_v rational_o urge_v against_o these_o few_o and_o especial_o where_o a_o superior_a authority_n require_v their_o conformity_n they_o ought_v to_o yield_v unto_o it_o and_o here_o see_v what_o he_o say_v 59_o say_v still_o p._n 58_o 59_o who_o urge_v this_o both_o concern_v scripture_n wrest_v by_o some_o in_o its_o sense_n even_o in_o those_o place_n of_o it_o where_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o necessary_a faith_n and_o manner_n and_o concern_v the_o christian_n duty_n herein_o to_o follow_v the_o common_a sense_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n now_o that_o these_o scripture_n here_o speak_v of_o however_o by_o some_o of_o late_o controvert_v have_v be_v always_o understand_v in_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n to_o declare_v a_o promise_n of_o infallibility_n in_o its_o governor_n for_o necessary_n appear_v sufficient_o by_o the_o proceed_n of_o her_o council_n ancient_a and_o modern_a require_v upon_o anathema_n assent_n to_o their_o decree_n and_o insert_v some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o creed_n of_o which_o more_o by_o and_o by_o 90._o by_o §_o 90._o here_o than_o it_o be_v deny_v that_o scripture_n when_o ever_o controvert_v by_o a_o few_o in_o some_o age_n against_o the_o traditional_a and_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o the_o former_a and_o present_a age_n as_o the_o text_n concern_v the_o trinity_n be_v now_o of_o late_a by_o the_o socinian_n be_v no_o rule_n plain_a or_o free_a enough_o from_o obscurity_n in_o the_o traditional_a sense_n thereof_o to_o decide_v such_o controversy_n §_o 88_o 2_o i_o answer_v for_o so_o much_o as_o be_v affirm_v of_o such_o council_n namely_o their_o infallibility_n in_o all_o their_o definition_n make_v in_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n that_o protestant_n themselves_o grant_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n both_o from_o scripture_n and_o from_o universal_a tradition_n that_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o all_o age_n be_v unerring_a in_o necessary_n and_o that_o this_o church_n catholic_n always_o do_v and_o shall_v consist_v as_o well_o of_o a_o guide_n and_o rule_v clergy_n as_o a_o guide_v and_o subject_a laity_n and_o that_o thus_o far_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n concern_v evidence_n of_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n and_o next_o from_o hence_o it_o certain_o follow_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o body_n of_o clergy_n for_o ever_o not_o err_v in_o necessary_n and_o again_o from_o this_o that_o this_o clergy_n when_o join_v in_o a_o general_a assembly_n or_o council_n and_o unanimous_o
consent_v shall_v never_o err_v in_o necessary_n and_o then_o in_o the_o last_o place_n if_o perhaps_o some_o small_a number_n of_o they_o do_v dissent_n from_o the_o rest_n since_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v always_o but_o one_o and_o be_v a_o government_n at_o peace_n within_o itself_o and_o constitute_v in_o a_o due_a subordination_n of_o its_o member_n in_o respect_n of_o one_o another_o and_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a here_o also_o it_o rational_o follow_v that_o the_o great_a and_o more_o dignify_a body_n of_o this_o clergy_n in_o any_o division_n of_o some_o member_n from_o it_o must_v be_v of_o these_o two_o that_o guide_n who_o christian_n be_v oblige_v to_o follow_v and_o the_o lesser_a and_o inferior_a part_n oblige_v to_o conform_v to_o and_o therefore_o this_o of_o the_o two_o the_o guide_n unerring_a see_v before_o disc_n 2._o §_o 23._o etc._n etc._n disc_n 1._o §_o 18._o here_o then_o arise_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n in_o reason_n from_o the_o principle_n concede_v by_o protestant_n of_o the_o unerring_a of_o a_o lawful_o general_a council_n in_o necessary_n without_o show_v the_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n for_o it_o §_o 89_o 3_o set_v aside_o any_o declaration_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o infallibility_n and_o suppose_v the_o gospel_n have_v not_o be_v write_v yet_o both_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o ever_o in_o their_o general_a council_n at_o least_o must_v have_v be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n else_o from_o who_o or_o by_o what_o other_o mean_n no_o scripture_n being_n exstant_fw-la can_v people_n have_v learn_v the_o way_n to_o salvation_n and_o also_o this_o their_o infallible_a guidance_n must_v have_v be_v make_v sufficient_o credible_a to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o tradition_n constant_o descend_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o confirm_v this_o their_o first_o testimony_n by_o miracle_n else_o the_o christian_a will_v have_v be_v no_o rational_a religion_n by_o which_o testimony_n also_o it_o be_v that_o those_o first_o teacher_n substitute_v by_o the_o apostle_n have_v full_a credit_n with_o and_o do_v beget_v infallible_a and_o save_a faith_n in_o their_o gentile-auditor_n before_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v deliver_v unto_o these_o gentile_n and_o therefore_o it_o appear_v that_o these_o teacher_n may_v have_v be_v also_o to_o this_o day_n with_o sufficient_a certainty_n rely_v on_o in_o their_o propagate_a and_o preserve_v the_o christian_a faith_n among_o their_o convert_v have_v there_o be_v no_o scripture_n at_o all_o to_o have_v teach_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o they_o and_o to_o have_v bear_v witness_n to_o their_o doctrine_n neither_o may_v it_o rational_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n possession_n of_o these_o scripture_n have_v disinherit_v they_o of_o any_o part_n of_o that_o authority_n and_o belief_n which_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o they_o may_v have_v challenge_v have_v there_o be_v no_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o present_a church_n ought_v still_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o her_o child_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o necessary_a truth_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v so_o by_o those_o who_o hear_v they_o and_o only_o from_o sufficient_o credible_a witness_n have_v hear_v of_o but_o have_v not_o see_v any_o of_o their_o miracle_n and_o then_o suppose_v first_o this_o their_o infallibility_n in_o necessary_n to_o be_v thus_o make_v credible_a to_o we_o by_o sufficient_a evidence_n in_o point_n of_o reason_n 559._o reason_n see_v stillingf_n p._n 559._o we_o be_v to_o believe_v they_o also_o when_o in_o their_o council_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o necessary_n if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v upon_o this_o account_n because_o they_o tell_v we_o so_o as_o he_o that_o once_o believe_v that_o whatever_o be_v say_v in_o god_n word_n be_v true_a be_v to_o believe_v also_o that_o god_n word_n be_v true_a because_o this_o word_n say_v so_o here_o than_o you_o see_v that_o there_o will_v have_v be_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n or_o assurance_n to_o christian_n descend_v by_o tradition_n of_o their_o be_v true_o and_o infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o substitute_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n without_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o council_n presuppose_v and_o have_v there_o be_v no_o holy_a scripture_n extant_a the_o same_o infallible_a guidance_n therefore_o be_v now_o have_v and_o know_v sufficient_o from_o they_o though_o we_o put_v also_o the_o scripture_n §_o 90_o 4_o by_o primitive_a tradition_n the_o catholic_n church_n in_o her_o general_n council_n have_v always_o think_v herself_o authorize_v to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n upon_o anathema_n to_o dissenter_n and_o to_o put_v they_o as_o think_v fit_a in_o the_o church_n creed_n with_o a_o obligation_n lay_v on_o all_o to_o believe_v they_o now_o either_o this_o will_v imply_v the_o infallibility_n of_o these_o council_n as_o they_o conceive_v in_o such_o point_n or_o if_o this_o be_v think_v to_o argue_v something_o less_o let_v but_o the_o same_o privilege_n still_o be_v continue_v to_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n in_o her_o council_n and_o the_o same_o obedience_n yield_v by_o her_o subject_n to_o her_o present_a definition_n and_o a_o sufficient_a certainty_n hereof_o grant_v viz._n that_o such_o authority_n she_o have_v and_o such_o duty_n they_o owe_v and_o any_o further_a extent_n of_o infallibility_n i_o suppose_v will_v not_o be_v claim_v here_o again_o we_o see_v that_o tradition_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o council_n without_o any_o their_o decree_n show_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n of_o such_o a_o infallibility_n of_o council_n as_o be_v challenge_v thus_o much_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o first_o query_n where_o the_o take_v this_o for_o a_o principle_n of_o catholic_n that_o none_o can_v have_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n either_o from_o scripture_n or_o church-tradition_n ground_v at_o first_o on_o miracle_n antecedent_n to_o the_o church_n authority_n define_v it_o in_o a_o general_a council_n cause_v in_o some_o protestant_n much_o misargue_n in_o this_o and_z several_z other_z points_z but_o now_o if_o we_o return_v a_o like_a query_n upon_o themselves_o who_o profess_v also_o a_o sufficient_a certainty_n in_o their_o faith_n even_o of_o those_o point_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n or_o it_o suffice_v if_o they_o profess_v so_o much_o concern_v any_o one_o such_o point_n and_o ask_v whence_o they_o have_v such_o certainty_n i_o see_v not_o what_o rational_o they_o can_v reply_v for_o 1_o they_o can_v build_v such_o a_o certainty_n on_o any_o church-authority_n since_o they_o deny_v any_o infallibility_n or_o sufficient_a certainty_n as_o to_o such_o point_n in_o the_o declaration_n or_o doctrine_n of_o this_o authority_n even_o in_o the_o supreme_a collection_n thereof_o the_o council_n general_n present_a or_o past_a nor_o yet_o 2_o on_o the_o scripture_n because_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o in_o these_o point_n be_v not_o only_o dispute_v which_o be_v here_o urge_v by_o they_o as_o sufficient_a to_o null_a a_o certainty_n but_o by_o the_o much_o major_a part_n of_o christendom_n and_o that_o after_o the_o protestant_n manifest_v to_o the_o world_n all_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o persuasion_n say_v to_o be_v clear_a against_o their_o new_a pretension_n but_o 3_o since_o the_o gospel_n be_v disperse_v in_o the_o world_n by_o christ_n substitute_n and_o minister_n and_o a_o multitude_n of_o soul_n save_v thereby_o before_o the_o pen_n or_o publish_v of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o gospel-scripture_n and_o therefore_o possible_o may_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n have_v continue_v to_o have_v be_v disperse_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n or_o for_o a_o much_o long_a time_n than_o it_o be_v so_o this_o query_n will_v still_o sore_a press_v they_o what_o certainty_n in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o i_o mean_v the_o world_n learn_v their_o faith_n from_o teacher_n without_o scripture_n can_v have_v have_v of_o their_o faith_n or_o whence_o or_o whether_o no_o certainty_n in_o such_o case_n to_o be_v have_v §_o 91_o 2_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 513._o ask_v see_v archb_n lawd_n p._n 228_o 239_o stillingf_n p._n 515_o 516_o 513._o from_o whence_o general_a council_n shall_v derive_v this_o their_o infallibility_n because_o 1_o the_o divine_a promise_n of_o infallibility_n if_o make_v to_o any_o be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o diffusive_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n neither_o can_v she_o bequeath_v or_o delegate_v this_o infallibility_n to_o her_o assign_n in_o a_o general_n council_n if_o no_o such_o power_n of_o devolution_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o original_a grant_n nor_o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o the_o maker_n of_o the_o promise_n do_v either_o appoint_v a_o general_n council_n to_o represent_v the_o
judge_v and_o from_o verse_n 20._o when_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n i._n e._n by_o my_o authority_n for_o judicature_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o context_n vers_fw-la 18._o their_o bind_n and_o lose_v from_o which_o the_o council_n of_o chalced._n ephesin_n chalced._n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o leo_n etc._n etc._n see_v celestin_o epist_n add_v council_n ephesin_n gather_v a_o minori_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la the_o authority_n of_o more_o general_a assembly_n and_o from_o 1_o cor._n 5.14_o 15._o when_o you_o be_v gather_v together_o i._n e._n the_o clergy_n chief_o excommunication_n be_v a_o act_n only_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o corinth_n and_o also_o *_o from_o the_o example_n in_o the_o act_n where_o upon_o the_o first_o great_a controversy_n a_o council_n be_v call_v to_o consider_v it_o in_o which_o though_o there_o be_v much_o dispute_v 7._o dispute_v act_n 15_o 6_o 7._o as_o use_v to_o be_v in_o other_o council_n yet_o the_o conclusion_n make_v therein_o be_v enjoin_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o only_o by_o or_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o be_v enjoin_v by_o these_o as_o assisted_z by_o that_o infallible_a holy_a ghost_n vers_n 28._o by_o which_o holy_a ghost_n also_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v constitue_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n act._n 20.28_o and_o s._n paul_n afterward_o every_o where_o in_o his_o perambulation_n deliver_v the_o decree_n of_o this_o council_n to_o be_v observe_v act._n 16.4_o and_o last_o *_o from_o the_o pattern_n establish_v by_o god_n deut._n 17._o of_o the_o former_a church_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o pattern_n that_o of_o the_o gospel_n general_o follow_v who_o chief_a court_n for_o decide_v controversy_n be_v a_o consisttory_n or_o council_n which_o also_o we_o find_v in_o the_o four_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o act_n to_o be_v call_v upon_o all_o great_a occasion_n §_o 95_o 4_o that_o in_o this_o meeting_n though_o all_o these_o governor_n i_o mean_v the_o bishop_n who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o chief_a rule_v of_o the_o church_n have_v right_a and_o also_o be_v oblige_v in_o duty_n to_o their_o superior_n summon_v they_o great_a inconvenience_n not_o hinder_v to_o be_v present_a yet_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v perpetual_a need_n of_o the_o residency_n of_o several_a of_o they_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o as_o some_o of_o these_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n personal_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n and_o act_v there_o upon_o no_o other_o delegated_a authority_n save_o their_o own_o hold_v from_o christ_n so_o other_o be_v only_o there_o represent_v by_o their_o fellow_n who_o be_v many_o time_n depute_v also_o by_o they_o in_o their_o necessary_a absence_n to_o declare_v their_o sentiment_n and_o vote_n in_o matter_n of_o present_a debate_n in_o their_o stead_n in_o respect_n of_o these_o absent_a prelate_n than_o it_o be_v as_o to_o any_o power_n of_o decide_v truth_n or_o make_v law_n that_o this_o body_n be_v call_v a_o representative_a and_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o multitude_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o order_n and_o oblige_v to_o receive_v their_o command_n and_o call_v a_o representative_a of_o these_o absent_a church-colleague_n not_o so_o as_o if_o this_o body_n reside_v in_o the_o council_n have_v no_o authority_n but_o hold_v from_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o both_o be_v equal_a or_o as_o if_o they_o need_v for_o their_o own_o session_n there_o any_o commission_n or_o warrant_v from_o the_o rest_n when_o as_o indeed_o the_o absent_v need_n rather_o a_o dispensation_n from_o they_o where_o all_o be_v lawful_o summon_v by_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n out_o of_o the_o duty_n they_o owe_v to_o they_o aught_o to_o be_v present_a and_o for_o absence_n be_v liable_a to_o their_o mulct_n but_o only_o as_o be_v say_v for_o that_o several_a of_o they_o be_v depute_v by_o these_o absent_v to_o present_v their_o vote_n and_o judgement_n in_o the_o thing_n consult_v on_o which_o necessary_a occasion_n hinder_v they_o from_o deliver_v there_o themselves_z §_o 96_o 5_o that_o see_v this_o collection_n of_o prelate_n especial_o in_o late_a time_n if_o we_o take_v the_o great_a that_o have_v or_o moral_o can_v be_v amount_v but_o to_o a_o small_a number_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o prelate_n of_o the_o whole_a universe_n therefore_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o absent_a concern_v matter_n to_o be_v define_v be_v declare_v either_o in_o provincial_n or_o other_o lesser_a meeting_n before_o such_o council_n or_o the_o thing_n define_v which_o give_v less_o trouble_n be_v afterward_o by_o they_o ratify_v and_o accept_v at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o to_o a_o tacit_n consent_n or_o noncontradiction_n of_o the_o act_n of_o such_o council_n of_o they_o convene_v whereby_o those_o act_n become_v most_o firm_a and_o universal_o oblige_v where_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v note_v *_o that_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o bishop_n reside_v in_o such_o council_n though_o they_o have_v not_o antecedent_o the_o formal_a consent_n of_o their_o brethren_n remain_v in_o the_o province_n for_o every_o thing_n they_o define_v yet_o do_v usual_o take_v care_n to_o regulate_v their_o definition_n according_a to_o the_o common_a clear_a know_v tradition_n of_o the_o church_n doctor_n both_o of_o former_a and_o present_a time_n present_a and_o former_a tradition_n as_o well_o for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o other_o thing_n not_o mention_v in_o scripture_n be_v the_o great_a director_n of_o their_o proceed_n according_a the_o ancient_a rule_n of_o pope_n steven_n nihil_fw-la innovetur_fw-la tradition_n i_o say_v either_o of_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o that_o be_v decide_v or_o of_o the_o principle_n whence_o it_o be_v clear_o deduce_v and_o *_o that_n they_o do_v abstain_v from_o determine_v any_o thing_n wherein_o they_o know_v catholic_n divine_v be_v much_o divide_v &_o where_o any_o doubt_n be_v of_o a_o concurrence_n therein_o of_o either_o all_o or_o most_o of_o their_o absent_a colleague_n this_o division_n of_o judgement_n hint_v to_o they_o both_o that_o there_o be_v more_o obscurity_n and_o uncertainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o point_n and_o less_o necessity_n of_o its_o be_v know_v and_o they_o general_o apprehend_v themselves_o only_o to_o be_v guardian_n of_o the_o current_a tradition_n not_o discoverer_n of_o any_o new_a science_n and_o such_o a_o proceed_n mr._n stillingfleet_n observe_v in_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n where_o he_o transform_v their_o christian_a wisdom_n into_o humane_a subtlety_n and_o guilty_a fear_n say_v 512._o say_v p._n 512._o that_o by_o this_o council_n much_o care_n be_v take_v in_o many_o of_o its_o decree_n to_o pass_v they_o in_o such_o general_a term_n that_o each_o party_n may_v find_v their_o sense_n in_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v fearful_a of_o declare_v themselves_o for_o fear_v of_o disoblige_v a_o particular_a party_n thus_o he_o which_o draw_v in_o fair_a colour_n be_v only_o to_o say_v that_o this_o council_n without_o descend_v to_o a_o compliance_n with_o particular_a opinion_n in_o its_o decree_n establish_v only_o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v general_o deliver_v and_o agree_v on_o by_o the_o learned_a of_o those_o church_n which_o they_o there_o represent_v §_o 97_o 6_o yet_o that_o this_o ratification_n of_o absent_a ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v not_o hold_v necessary_a as_o to_o all_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n for_o neither_o have_v all_o these_o absent_v be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n be_v the_o vote_n of_o every_o one_o there_o necessary_a for_o pass_v a_o act_n or_o further_o than_o a_o moderate_o major_a part_n of_o they_o to_o which_o major_a part_n join_v with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o in_o the_o council_n so_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n out_o of_o the_o council_n the_o rest_n of_o prelate_n and_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o conform_v in_o their_o judgement_n and_o in_o the_o idem_fw-la sapientes_fw-la idipsum_fw-la sentientes_fw-la in_fw-la eâdem_fw-la permanentes_fw-la regulâ_fw-la non_fw-la prudentes_fw-la apud_fw-la semetipsos_fw-la which_o be_v so_o often_o inculcate_v by_o the_o apostle_n 16._o apostle_n philip._n 2.3.3.16_o râm_fw-la 12_o 16._o that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o schism_n but_o eternal_a unity_n and_o peace_n in_o this_o catholic_n body_n as_o for_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o church_n diffusive_a the_o laity_n or_o also_o some_o degree_n of_o inferior_a clergy_n as_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o sit_v here_o as_o member_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o to_o confirm_v or_o refuse_v the_o act_n of_o this_o supreme_a court_n but_o be_v tie_v with_o a_o obedite_fw-la &_o subjacere_fw-la praepositis_fw-la heb._n 13.17_o to_o submit_v to_o their_o decree_n and_o obey_v their_o injunction_n to_o such_o a_o degree_n as_o they_o be_v require_v and_o thus_o do_v
can_v be_v establish_v and_o that_o before_o one_o error_n will_v so_o be_v amend_v many_o truth_n whilst_o its_o definition_n be_v expose_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o every_o private_a fancy_n will_v be_v pervert_v and_o that_o it_o be_v much_o the_o better_a of_o the_o two_o that_o some_o error_n in_v non-necessaries_a remain_v unremedy_v than_o that_o no_o truth_n in_o necessary_n stand_v fix_v and_o confirm_v again_o since_o all_o person_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o thing_n wherein_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v controvert_v if_o they_o will_v not_o profess_v themselves_o sceptic_n aught_o to_o acquiesce_v in_o some_o ultimate_a judge_n or_o other_o though_o liable_a to_o error_n let_v those_o then_o who_o reject_v a_o general_n council_n name_v what_o other_o ultimate_a judge_n they_o will_v choose_v rather_o i_o suppose_v here_o they_o will_v blush_v to_o name_n themselves_o for_o that_o judge_n neither_o can_v they_o have_v show_v of_o reason_n to_o name_v either_o any_o other_o single_a person_n or_o yet_o inferior_a council_n to_o be_v that_o judge_n against_o a_o general_n last_o the_o same_o difficulty_n and_o hazard_n may_v be_v charge_v upon_o the_o protestant_n ground_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o faith_n 38._o faith_n see_v disc_n 2._o §_o 38._o viz._n that_o the_o sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v clear_a to_o all_o use_v ordinary_a industry_n to_o understand_v it_o in_o all_o necessary_n for_o now_o suppose_v that_o indeed_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n shall_v not_o be_v clear_a and_o so_o such_o protestant_n sole_o guide_v by_o it_o use_v his_o industry_n yet_o shall_v err_v in_o some_o such_o point_n such_o error_n of_o he_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v rectify_v so_o long_o as_o he_o maintain_v this_o ground_n a_o thing_n observe_v by_o mr._n thorndike_n just_a weight_n c._n 21._o p._n 137._o 7_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v whether_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v affirm_v infallible_a only_o with_o 7._o q._n 7._o or_o also_o without_o the_o concurrence_n and_o confirmation_n of_o its_o decree_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n §_o 104_o to_o which_o wave_v here_o what_o testimony_n may_v be_v produce_v from_o scripture_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o antiquity_n concern_v st._n peter_n supremacy_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v in_o it_o 1_o i_o answer_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 11.16_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11.16_o stand_v upon_o the_o church_n custom_n in_o another_o matter_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n always_o have_v have_v such_o a_o custom_n to_o define_v nothing_o in_o faith_n without_o or_o against_o the_o consent_n of_o this_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o prime_a apostolic_a see_n and_o that_o this_o have_v be_v constant_o deliver_v by_o their_o tradition_n see_v the_o ancient_a canon_n concern_v this_o sine_fw-la romano_n pontifice_fw-la nihil_fw-la finiendum_fw-la *_o urge_v by_o julius_n not_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o his_o epistle_n recite_v by_o athanasius_n apol._n 2._o against_o the_o oriental_a arrian_n bishop_n slight_v his_o authority_n *_o urge_v by_o innocentius_n apud_fw-la august_n ep._n 91._o *_o mention_v by_o socrates_n l._n 2._o c._n 13_o by_o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o and_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o in_o the_o time_n that_o those_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o capital_a error_n suppress_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n trouble_v the_o church_n though_o all_o the_o other_o chief_a patriarch_n be_v taint_v with_o one_o or_o other_o of_o they_o yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n always_o stand_v firm_a and_o the_o church_n in_o her_o vote_n always_o join_v with_o his_o chair_n though_o divide_v from_o some_o of_o the_o other_o if_o the_o act_n of_o liberius_n be_v here_o object_v see_v what_o be_v answer_v to_o it_o disc_n 2._o §_o 26._o n._n 4._o and_o see_v this_o prime_a patriarch_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n preside_v in_o general_a council_n 33._o council_n see_v before_o §._o 33._o as_o the_o metropolitan_a do_v in_o provincial_n therefore_o as_o the_o canon_n order_v concern_v provincial_a council_n ut_fw-la nihil_fw-la praeter_fw-la metropolitani_n conscientiam_fw-la gerant_fw-la etc._n etc._n sic_fw-la enim_fw-la unanimitas_fw-la erit_fw-la 9_o erit_fw-la apostol_n can_v 35._o council_n antioch_n can_v 9_o so_o there_o seem_v the_o same_o equity_n that_o neither_o the_o general_n council_n shall_v pass_v any_o act_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n their_o precedent_n and_o head_n but_o 2_o so_o long_o as_o no_o council_n be_v press_v upon_o protestant_n as_o lawful_o general_a or_o infallible_a save_v only_o such_o which_o this_o prime_a patriarch_n have_v always_o consent_v to_o and_o confirm_v this_o question_n whether_o the_o act_n of_o such_o council_n may_v stand_v good_a or_o their_o authority_n be_v infallible_a without_o his_o consent_n may_v be_v supersede_v 8._o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 8._o q._n 8._o how_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n of_o its_o decree_n can_v concur_v to_o the_o not_o err_v of_o such_o a_o council_n since_o his_o confirmation_n follow_v its_o final_a decision_n for_o now_o if_o it_o have_v err_v it_o be_v erroneous_a though_o he_o approve_v it_o if_o not_o it_o be_v orthodox_n be_v so_o may_v be_v safe_o accept_a tho_o he_o reject_v it_o 509._o it_o dr._n pierce_v answ_n to_o cressy_n p._n 17._o stillingf_n p._n 509._o i_o answer_v his_o confirmation_n secure_v we_o that_o the_o council_n err_v not_o or_o the_o council_n never_o err_v when_o he_o confirm_v it_o because_o suppose_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o council_n shall_v decree_v a_o error_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assist_v this_o holy_a father_n and_o prime_a patriarch_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n precedent_n of_o these_o council_n so_o as_o that_o it_o effectual_o hinder_v he_o after_o what_o manner_n or_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o please_v that_o he_o do_v never_o confirm_v it_o lest_o so_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v be_v misguide_v in_o something_o necessary_a or_o again_o when_o he_o perhaps_o will_v leave_v to_o himself_o confirm_v a_o error_n the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n assist_v the_o council_n so_o by_o what_o way_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n it_o matter_n not_o that_o they_o do_v not_o define_v it_o and_o thus_o the_o council_n never_o err_v be_v confirm_v by_o he_o either_o because_o its_o decree_n be_v orthodox_n or_o his_o consent_n withhold_v hence_o then_o if_o the_o decree_n be_v erroneous_a he_o never_o approve_v if_o orthodox_n he_o safe_o approve_v they_o 9_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 9_o q._n 9_o if_o the_o council_n not_o secure_a from_o err_v without_o the_o pope_n approbation_n §_o 106_o nor_o again_o the_o pope_n without_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o council_n in_o which_o of_o the_o two_o the_o infallibility_n or_o not_o err_v reside_v for_o in_o which_o soever_o we_o shall_v place_v it_o it_o render_v the_o other_o needless_a i_o answer_v where_o be_v suppose_v the_o consent_n of_o both_o in_o a_o truth_n the_o actual_a non-erring_a lie_n in_o both_o but_o the_o original_a cause_n of_o this_o not_o err_v may_v be_v sometime_o in_o the_o one_o and_o sometime_o in_o the_o other_o as_o also_o err_v may_v be_v in_o either_o separate_v as_o they_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n more_o effectual_o illuminate_v or_o guide_v so_o as_o in_o the_o last_o question_n be_v explain_v chap._n ix_o 10._o q._n if_o general_n council_n infallible_a whether_o they_o be_v so_o in_o their_o conclusion_n only_o which_o infer_v enthusiasm_n or_o new_a revelation_n or_o also_o in_o their_o premise_n and_o proof_n upon_o which_o assent_n will_v be_v due_a to_o all_o their_o argument_n §_o 107._o 11_o q._n why_o be_v infallible_a at_o least_o in_o their_o conclusion_n they_o do_v not_o end_v all_o controversy_n but_o leave_v so_o many_o unresolved_a §_o 108._o 12._o q._n how_o such_o infallibility_n of_o they_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o decree_n from_o that_o of_o scripture_n 109._o 13._o q._n how_o many_o person_n or_o guide_n all_o fallible_a can_v make_v up_o one_o infallible_a §_o 112._o 14._o q._n suppose_v all_o lawful_a general_n council_n infallible_a yet_o how_o can_v any_o know_v infallible_o which_o be_v lawful_a general_n council_n because_o of_o the_o many_o condition_n require_v to_o make_v they_o such_o in_o some_o one_o of_o which_o he_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o any_o council_n that_o it_o have_v not_o fail_v §_o 114._o 10._o a_o gain_n it_o be_v ask_v if_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v not_o liable_a to_o error_n whether_o it_o be_v so_o in_o its_o definition_n and_o conclusion_n only_o or_o in_o the_o premise_n also_o and_o its_o right_a deduction_n of_o the_o conclusion_n from_o they_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o
shall_v be_v free_a from_o error_n save_v in_o the_o definition_n or_o conclusion_n only_o which_o i_o say_v not_o as_o deny_v sufficient_a former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n whereon_o to_o ground_v every_o conclusion_n that_o have_v be_v pass_v in_o any_o council_n nor_o that_o such_o revelation_n and_o tradition_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o council_n but_o only_o that_o for_o the_o council_n not_o err_v in_o the_o conclusion_n this_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o all_o the_o principle_n or_o all_o the_o reason_n it_o use_v be_v infallible_a and_o certain_a if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v infallible_a or_o actual_o unerring_a for_o this_o be_v all_o that_o be_v mean_v in_o the_o conclusion_n when_o fallible_a or_o err_v in_o the_o make_n premise_n or_o deduction_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assist_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v always_o conclude_v right_a and_o that_o from_o some_o principle_n never_o fail_v though_o some_o other_o such_o a_o conclusion_n be_v not_o solid_a i_o say_v some_o principle_n for_o since_o the_o same_o conclusion_n be_v provable_a by_o many_o several_a medium_n or_o argument_n or_o the_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n itself_o may_v descend_v by_o express_a tradition_n and_o not_o be_v extract_v only_o out_o of_o some_o former_a traditive_a principle_n by_o deduction_n it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o council_n hitherto_o have_v fail_v in_o either_o of_o these_o the_o deliver_v a_o proposition_n as_o express_v tradition_n that_o be_v not_o so_o or_o the_o deduct_v it_o from_o principle_n none_o of_o which_o be_v true_a or_o traditional_a nor_o be_v we_o certain_a that_o more_o argument_n or_o reason_n be_v not_o use_v by_o any_o such_o council_n than_o those_o only_a that_o be_v transmit_v to_o posterity_n nor_o do_v i_o see_v who_o be_v sufficient_a judge_n of_o the_o misarguing_n of_o council_n unless_o it_o be_v some_o follow_a council_n of_o the_o same_o authority_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v also_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v preserve_v the_o church_n in_o all_o necessary_a truth_n by_o inspire_v and_o illuminate_v their_o understanding_n in_o and_o exciting_a the_o adherence_n of_o their_o will_n to_o such_o truth_n when_o they_o be_v mistake_v in_o some_o of_o the_o rational_a evidence_n they_o think_v they_o have_v for_o it_o by_o illuminate_v they_o i_o say_v after_o the_o same_o ordinary_a manner_n in_o the_o council_n as_o they_o or_o other_o out_o of_o it_o only_o this_o assistance_n here_o be_v constant_a to_o a_o competent_a number_n and_o they_o be_v dispose_v right_o for_o it_o in_o this_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a court_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o out_o of_o the_o council_n the_o same_o person_n when_o some_o way_n indispose_v thereto_o often_o fail_v of_o it_o but_o in_o the_o last_o place_n if_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o they_o or_o other_o can_v know_v that_o that_o they_o do_v not_o err_v in_o the_o conclusion_n where_o their_o premise_n or_o their_o deduction_n be_v suppose_v erroneous_a i_o answer_v 1_o that_o they_o may_v know_v they_o do_v not_o err_v either_o from_o tradition_n of_o the_o conclusion_n or_o the_o certainty_n of_o other_o premise_n or_o evident_a deduction_n use_v 2_o that_o indeed_o they_o can_v true_o be_v certain_a of_o their_o conclusion_n by_o this_o way_n viz._n from_o their_o argue_v if_o it_o be_v not_o right_a or_o from_o the_o principle_n they_o use_v if_o this_o uncertain_a or_o false_a but_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o their_o conclusion_n still_o by_o another_o way_n from_o christ_n promise_n if_o he_o have_v engage_v to_o they_o a_o not_o err_v therein_o and_o the_o confidence_n of_o their_o infallibility_n lie_v in_o this_o latter_a not_o always_o the_o former_a which_o perhaps_o may_v be_v discover_v sometime_o to_o fail_v in_o the_o first_o council_n act._n 15._o there_o be_v much_o reason_a pro_fw-la and_o con_v v._n 15._o and_o some_o reason_n that_o be_v amiss_o and_o yet_o to_o their_o conclusion_n be_v prefix_v a_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la 11._o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 11._o q._n 11._o why_o if_o these_o council_n secure_a of_o not_o err_v §_o 108_o at_o least_o in_o their_o conclusion_n they_o do_v not_o straightways_o determine_v all_o controversy_n some_o of_o which_o seem_v necessary_a to_o be_v so_o determine_v because_o of_o the_o great_a trouble_n they_o give_v the_o church_n and_o particular_o why_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n leave_v so_o many_o unresolved_a that_o be_v agitate_a not_o only_o before_o but_o also_o in_o that_o council_n by_o its_o own_o member_n i_o answer_v because_o they_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n not_o in_o decide_v any_o point_n controvert_v but_o only_o those_o necessary_a and_o again_o they_o judge_v necessary_a to_o be_v decide_v only_o those_o point_n whereof_o they_o have_v a_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n descend_v to_o they_o for_o in_o all_o necessary_n by_o the_o divine_a providence_n these_o two_o fail_v they_o not_o a_o revelation_n and_o tradition_n thereof_o either_o in_o the_o formal_a conclusion_n itself_o or_o in_o its_o necessary_a principle_n in_o the_o consider_v of_o which_o principle_n and_o deduction_n though_o the_o guide_n be_v sometime_o liable_a to_o mistake_n yet_o the_o divine_a promise_n and_o superintendency_n *_o never_o suffer_v they_o to_o err_v in_o the_o matter_n that_o be_v conclude_v from_o they_o or_o also_o never_o suffer_v they_o to_o err_v in_o all_o those_o principle_n when_o they_o attempt_v by_o these_o to_o prove_v some_o tradition_n from_o which_o it_o may_v be_v conclude_v as_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o last_o query_n whilst_o they_o pass_v not_o beyond_o the_o settle_n of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o this_o church_n *_o nor_o yet_o 2_o suffer_v they_o to_o pass_v these_o bound_n of_o resolve_v necessary_n so_o far_o as_o to_o burden_v the_o church_n faith_n with_o curiosity_n and_o this_o union_n of_o the_o divine_a direction_n together_o with_o humane_a reason_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o very_a first_o council_n hold_v act._n 15._o but_o now_o mention_v where_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v apply_v to_o all_o or_o major_a part_n that_o sit_v in_o council_n and_o concur_v in_o make_v the_o decree_n not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v find_v well_o to_o consist_v with_o the_o great_a reason_n &_o dispute_v use_v there_o before_o the_o laââ_n resolution_n cum_fw-la autem_fw-la magna_fw-la conquisitio_fw-la fieret_fw-la vers._n 7._o and_o yet_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la vers._n 28._o there_o be_v therefore_o two_o sort_n of_o controversy_n which_o these_o supreme_a court_n ordinary_o dismiss_v unresolved_a the_o one_o sort_n out_o of_o necessity_n namely_o those_o whereof_o they_o find_v no_o certain_a former_a revelation_n or_o tradition_n whence_o with_o good_a reason_n they_o conclude_v also_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o not_o necessary_a the_o other_o voluntary_o such_o as_o appear_v to_o they_o of_o sufficient_a evidence_n but_o small_a consequence_n 12._o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 12._o q._n 12._o how_o such_o infallibility_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n do_v any_o way_n differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n §_o 109_o or_o that_o of_o their_o decree_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o whatever_o decree_n of_o council_n be_v true_a they_o be_v as_o true_a as_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o whatever_o the_o church-guide_n be_v infallible_a or_o unerring_a they_o be_v as_o infallible_a in_o it_o as_o the_o apostle_n for_o one_o truth_n be_v no_o true_a than_o another_o but_o that_o this_o their_o infallibility_n as_o to_o several_a circumstance_n thereof_o compare_v with_o the_o apostle_n be_v much_o inferior_a 1_o in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o extend_v so_o far_o for_o its_o matter_n as_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o they_o deliver_v these_o only_a in_o their_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n §_o 110_o 2_o in_o that_o though_o sometime_o the_o reason_n why_o these_o do_v not_o err_v in_o such_o a_o definition_n may_v be_v not_o their_o necessary_a deduction_n of_o it_o from_o a_o infallible_a principle_n but_o the_o inspiration_n illumination_n immediate_a assent_n of_o faith_n or_o some_o other_o way_n of_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n at_o that_o time_n upon_o they_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o it_o work_v on_o other_o christian_n when_o ever_o it_o open_v their_o mind_n and_o make_v they_o understand_v a_o truth_n beyond_o the_o rational_a argument_n they_o have_v or_o humane_a industry_n they_o use_v to_o attain_v it_o yet_o such_o inspiration_n in_o this_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o as_o the_o council_n collect_v not_o this_o their_o infallibility_n from_o any_o unfailable_a
argumentation_n always_o make_v by_o they_o concern_v such_o particular_a conclusion_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o collect_v it_o from_o any_o such_o inspiration_n which_o they_o sensible_o pârreive_v nor_o from_o any_o express_a testimony_n that_o the_o spirit_n give_v to_o such_o its_o operation_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v but_o only_o in_o general_a from_o the_o divine_a promise_n that_o in_o all_o such_o conclusion_n they_o shall_v not_o miscarry_v §_o 111_o 3_o the_o church_n infallibility_n differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o inspiration_n or_o revelation_n if_o you_o will_v not_o of_o any_o new_a doctrine_n but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v in_o its_o principle_n at_o least_o former_o reveal_v and_o deliver_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o be_v not_o may_v be_v attain_v by_o deduction_n from_o those_o principle_n without_o any_o new_a inspiration_n and_o be_v actual_o have_v in_o the_o church_n still_o either_o from_o such_o true_a principle_n or_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o and_o to_o end_v this_o question_n let_v they_o who_o ask_v it_o consider_v in_o what_o manner_n the_o church_n catholic_n diffusive_a be_v for_o ever_o preserve_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n a_o thing_n they_o affirm_v without_o its_o equal_v infallibility_n apostolical_a and_o i_o answer_v her_o general_a council_n be_v so_o too_o to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o query_n i_o answer_v in_o what_o sort_n their_o infallibility_n equal_v not_o the_o apostle_n so_o neither_o that_o of_o their_o decree_n that_o of_o scripture_n §_o 112_o 13._o again_o 13._o q._n 13._o it_o be_v ask_v 9_o ask_v dr._n pierce_v answ_n to_o cressy_n p._n 9_o how_o many_o person_n or_o guide_n all_o fallible_a can_v make_v up_o one_o infallible_a any_o more_o than_o many_o planet_n one_o sun_n or_o many_o act_n of_o finite_a knowledge_n one_o true_o infinite_a i_o answer_v 1_o with_o another_o question_n how_o the_o whole_a diffusive_a body_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o many_o member_n all_o fallible_a or_o failable_a in_o necessary_n yet_o be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o infallible_a or_o unfailable_a in_o necessary_n 2_o infallible_a be_v understand_v as_o it_o be_v mean_v i._n e._n for_o the_o church_n actual_o never_o err_v at_o such_o time_n in_o such_o a_o meeting_n and_o treat_v on_o such_o matter_n the_o question_n be_v no_o more_o than_o this_o how_o several_a person_n err_v in_o one_o thing_n may_v be_v non-erring_a in_o any_o or_o in_o another_o thing_n or_o how_o the_o same_o person_n when_o meet_v together_o and_o divine_o assist_v in_o the_o matter_n they_o consult_v about_o do_v not_o or_o shall_v not_o err_v when_o the_o same_o person_n in_o the_o same_o thing_n at_o some_o other_o time_n when_o not_o consult_v together_o and_o have_v no_o certain_a divine_a assistance_n promise_v to_o they_o may_v and_o ordinary_o do_v err_v and_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o this_o be_v effect_v by_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n divine_o assist_v and_o preserve_v they_o in_o such_o meeting_n in_o such_o matter_n from_o error_n it_o be_v also_o urge_v 11._o urge_v dr._n pierce_v ib._n p._n 11._o that_o council_n indeed_o may_v actual_o not_o err_v as_o single_a person_n also_o may_v not_o yet_o that_o hence_o none_o can_v right_o style_v council_n infallible_a or_o unerrable_a and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o participle_n suppose_v non_fw-la fallens_fw-la or_o non_fw-la falsus_fw-la and_o the_o adjective_n in_o bilis_fw-la non_fw-la fallibilis_fw-la i_o answer_v whatever_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o participle_n and_o adjective_n no_o more_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o second_o that_o by_o the_o first_o only_o with_o a_o semper_fw-la add_v to_o it_o viz._n ecclesia_fw-la infallibilis_fw-la i._n e._n semper_fw-la non_fw-la falsa_fw-la if_o i_o may_v use_v this_o word_n in_o errabilis_fw-la i_fw-it e._n semper_fw-la non_fw-la errans_fw-la or_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la nunquam_fw-la errans_fw-la now_o though_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v also_o unerring_a in_o several_a thing_n yet_o not_o always_o and_o though_o this_o that_o god_n may_v preserve_v single_a person_n unerring_a always_o be_v true_a yet_o that_o he_o do_v so_o be_v deny_v of_o they_o but_o affirm_v of_o the_o church_n or_o lawful_a general_n council_n as_o to_o all_o necessary_n be_v it_o not_o strange_a that_o grave_a divine_n rather_o than_o be_v find_v without_o a_o reply_n shall_v raise_v mâsts_n and_o make_v great_a difficulty_n and_o fall_v on_o vindicate_v the_o divine_a attribute_n in_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o this_o intelligible_a to_o child_n who_o one_o day_n must_v give_v account_n hereof_o §_o 113_o after_o all_o these_o objection_n and_o difficulty_n make_v concern_v the_o infallibility_n or_o not_o err_v of_o lawful_a general_n council_n next_o suppose_v that_o all_o such_o be_v as_o to_o all_o necessary_a faith_n a_o infallible_a guide_n and_o all_o the_o former_a difficulty_n concern_v this_o point_n clear_o remove_v yet_o a_o new_a roll_n of_o objection_n and_o interrogation_n be_v bring_v in_o against_o our_o discern_a or_o know_v certain_o what_o or_o how_o many_o of_o past_a council_n have_v be_v lawful_o general_n 14._o next_o than_o it_o be_v urge_v that_o 14._o q._n 14._o lawful_a general_n council_n only_o be_v pretend_v infallible_a any_o §_o 114_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o any_o particular_a council_n it_o be_v not_o err_v and_o so_o to_o yield_v his_o assent_n to_o its_o decree_n as_o such_o must_v know_v first_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n and_o for_o this_o again_o must_v know_v who_o be_v just_o the_o constitutive_a member_n of_o such_o a_o body_n *_o whither_o bishop_n only_a or_o also_o presbyter_n or_o also_o the_o laity_n as_o act._n 15.22_o 23._o the_o brethren_n also_o be_v admit_v *_o whither_o the_o vote_n therein_o ought_v to_o be_v number_v according_a to_o the_o person_n or_o rather_o to_o the_o several_a church_n and_o nation_n the_o great_a church_n have_v many_o time_n in_o the_o synod_n the_o few_o representatives_n and_o so_o the_o few_o personal_a vote_n *_o whither_o the_o bishop_n sit_v therein_o be_v lawful_a bishop_n and_o in_o order_n to_o this_o whether_o 1_o true_o priest_n and_o true_o baptize_v and_o whether_o that_o some_o of_o these_o sacrament_n have_v no_o miscarriage_n for_o want_v of_o the_o priest_n due_a intention_n in_o administer_a they_o *_o whither_o a_o sufficient_a number_n of_o bishop_n reside_v in_o it_o and_o those_o equal_o from_o all_o part_n so_o to_o make_v it_o a_o full_a and_o entire_a representative_a of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o *_o whether_o the_o pope_n summons_n be_v sufficient_a thereto_o though_o this_o question_n seem_v needless_o ask_v for_o all_o those_o council_n in_o the_o convening_n of_o which_o both_o the_o pope_n &_o christian_a prince_n have_v concur_v *_o 1._o whether_o the_o bishop_n appear_v in_o council_n be_v sufficient_o commission_v from_o those_o church_n they_o pretend_v to_o represent_v and_o 2._o *_o whither_o sufficient_o instruct_v as_o to_o the_o point_n to_o be_v decide_v concern_v the_o fence_n therein_o of_o the_o absent_a bishop_n first_o declare_v in_o their_o provincial_n or_o other_o synod_n or_o meeting_n and_o 3._o *_o whether_o those_o in_o the_o council_n do_v true_o speak_v and_o render_v this_o their_o fence_n *_o whither_o be_v lawful_o assemble_v they_o have_v also_o lawful_o proceed_v *_o whither_o they_o come_v to_o the_o council_n without_o prejudice_n and_o seek_v nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n otherwise_o they_o be_v not_o gather_v together_o in_o christ_n name_n and_o then_o neither_o be_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o whether_o a_o faction_n or_o some_o few_o more_o powerful_a have_v not_o out-witted_n or_o overawe_v the_o rest_n and_o *_o whether_o some_o not_o corrupt_v or_o bribe_v to_o give_v their_o vote_n against_o conscience_n *_o whither_o be_v lawful_o assemble_v and_o lawful_o proceed_v they_o make_v indeed_o such_o decree_n as_o be_v pretend_v they_o *_o what_o of_o these_o decree_n be_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la what_o not_o *_o whither_o these_o decree_n have_v that_o meaning_n real_o which_o the_o peruser_n of_o they_o apprehend_v for_o scripture_n in_o decide_v of_o controversy_n be_v doubtful_a and_o liable_a to_o wrong_v interpretation_n why_o may_v not_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n be_v so_o too_o 512._o too_o stillingf_n p._n 512._o nay_o much_o more_o for_o we_o have_v many_o other_o place_n to_o compare_v the_o help_n of_o original_a tongue_n and_o the_o help_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o understand_v scripture_n by_o when_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n be_v many_o time_n purposely_o frame_v in_o general_a term_n and_o with_o ambiguous_a expression_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n
to_o some_o dissent_v party_n thus_o they_o argue_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v if_o the_o law_n can_v be_v understand_v much_o less_o the_o judge_n that_o be_v appoint_v to_o explain_v it_o for_o also_o we_o have_v many_o comment_n on_o the_o law_n none_o on_o his_o sentence_n or_o as_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o many_o canon_n of_o council_n that_o be_v urge_v against_o protestant_n be_v not_o grant_v by_o they_o both_o sufficient_o clear_a and_o accuse_v by_o they_o as_o evident_o erroneous_a last_o *_o whether_o their_o decree_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o then_o for_o this_o it_o must_v be_v know_v also_o whether_o the_o pope_n confirm_v they_o be_v a_o lawful_a pope_n *_o whether_o not_o simonical_o elect_v which_o but_o once_o happen_v there_o follow_v from_o it_o the_o illegality_n of_o all_o his_o successor_n because_o these_o choose_v by_o some_o cardinal_n that_o be_v create_v by_o he_o who_o be_v no_o legitimate_a elector_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n say_v mr._n stillingfleet_n 125._o stillingfleet_n p._n 125._o there_o have_v be_v no_o legal_a pope_n since_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o here_o again_o return_v all_o these_o question_n concern_v the_o pope_n baptism_n ordination_n etc._n etc._n with_o a_o right_a intention_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o do_v they_o which_o be_v ask_v former_o concern_v the_o bishop_n these_o and_o many_o more_o such_o like_a query_n be_v make_v by_o person_n study_v acuteness_n in_o throw_v down_o the_o pillar_n of_o a_o former_a settle_a faith_n to_o make_v way_n for_o introduce_v a_o more_o free_a and_o unconfined_a i._n e._n a_o more_o sceptical_a and_o arbitrary_a or_o latitudinarian_a religion_n and_o since_o from_o any_o of_o these_o query_n a_o quarrel_n may_v be_v make_v against_o a_o council_n as_o not_o lawful_a there_o will_v never_o want_v for_o any_o past_a council_n some_o pretence_n or_o other_o of_o disallow_v it_o when_o state_v doctrine_n or_o give_v law_n contrary_a to_o our_o inclination_n or_o interest_n and_o how_o easy_a be_v it_o for_o a_o socinian_n from_o several_a of_o these_o to_o quarrel_v with_o that_o of_o nice_n see_v below_o disc_n 4._o §_o 18._o etc._n etc._n to_o all_o which_o i_o return_v this_o answer_n 1_o that_o a_o rational_a not-possibly-fallible_a §_o 115_o certainty_n or_o assurance_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o any_o council_n or_o of_o the_o forementioned_a particular_n whereby_o this_o lawfulness_n may_v be_v know_v be_v by_o no_o side_n affirm_v necessary_a 2_o that_o as_o for_o a_o non-moral_o fallible_a certainty_n in_o respect_n of_o several_a of_o the_o particular_n such_o as_o these_o whether_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v true_o and_o lawful_o baptize_v ordain_v etc._n etc._n none_o simoniacal_o elect_v none_o come_v to_o the_o council_n with_o prejudice_n none_o corrupt_v or_o overawe_v in_o give_v his_o vote_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v sufficient_a that_o where_o any_o of_o these_o do_v fail_v the_o cognizance_n of_o tradition_n yet_o any_o christian_a in_o general_n may_v be_v rational_o assure_v i_o mean_v as_o to_o the_o much_o major_a part_n of_o such_o council_n for_o more_o need_v not_o that_o that_o divine_a providence_n and_o assistance_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o preserve_v the_o church_n lawful_a general_n council_n from_o not_o err_v in_o necessary_n do_v consequent_o either_o preserve_v such_o council_n as_o be_v take_v by_o this_o church_n for_o lawful_o general_a from_o all_o such_o defect_n as_o do_v render_v they_o not_o capable_a of_o his_o promise_n of_o not_o err_v or_o if_o any_o forepast_a council_n repute_v lawful_o general_n have_v have_v such_o defect_n do_v continue_v the_o same_o privilege_n of_o not_o err_v also_o to_o these_o council_n because_o such_o their_o defect_n be_v undiscernible_a to_o the_o church_n otherwise_o the_o church_n error_n in_o not_o discern_v lawful_a council_n will_v render_v the_o divine_a favour_n in_o assist_v lawful_a council_n useless_a and_o unbeneficial_a unto_o she_o §_o 116_o and_o this_o answer_n be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v think_v reasonable_a and_o give_v by_o protestant_n in_o other_o case_n so_o mr._n chillingworth_n 78._o chillingworth_n p._n 78._o up_o a_o doubt_n propose_v whether_o a_o penitent_a do_v his_o own_o best_a endeavour_n when_o absolve_v of_o his_o sin_n by_o one_o that_o go_v for_o but_o real_o be_v no_o priest_n or_o by_o a_o priest_n but_o without_o a_o intention_n of_o absolve_v he_o receive_v any_o benefit_n thereby_o think_v this_o a_o good_a answer_n that_o god_n goodness_n will_v supply_v all_o such_o defect_n as_o to_o humane_a endeavour_n be_v unavoidable_a and_o therefore_o though_o his_o priest_n be_v indeed_o no_o priest_n yet_o to_o he_o he_o shall_v be_v as_o if_o he_o be_v one_o and_o if_o he_o give_v absolution_n without_o intention_n yet_o in_o do_v so_o he_o shall_v hurt_v himself_o only_o not_o his_o penitent_n and_o protestant_n upon_o supposition_n that_o god_n have_v by_o no_o other_o way_n clear_o reveal_v the_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n do_v from_o the_o same_o goodness_n of_o god_n prove_v their_o fundamental_a doctrine_n that_o all_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n be_v clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n where_o as_o i_o conceive_v the_o supposition_n to_o fail_v so_o the_o argue_v good_a upon_o the_o common_a principle_n that_o deus_fw-la non_fw-la deficit_fw-la in_o necessariis_fw-la §_o 117_o 3._o so_o far_o as_o the_o former_a question_n be_v move_v concern_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n i_o suppose_v protestant_n will_v affirm_v that_o they_o have_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n concern_v some_o council_n that_o they_o be_v lawful_o general_n as_o concern_v the_o four_o first_o who_o definition_n also_o they_o retain_v in_o their_o creed_n what_o ground_n therefore_o of_o their_o certainty_n of_o these_o council_n that_o they_o be_v lawful_o general_n they_o will_v return_v to_o a_o socinian_n ask_v the_o former_a question_n of_o they_o whether_o this_o ground_n be_v a_o general_n church-tradition_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o the_o same_o may_v be_v return_v to_o the_o same_o question_n concern_v the_o rest_n that_o have_v be_v hold_v lawful_o general_n by_o the_o common_a tradition_n of_o late_a time_n since_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n add_v to_o this_o that_o notwithstanding_o in_o general_a they_o allow_v some_o obedience_n due_a to_o lawful_a general_n council_n yet_o if_o they_o deny_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n of_o know_v any_o such_o this_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o release_v all_o christian_a obedience_n to_o any_o council_n in_o particular_a §_o 118_o 4_o i_o answer_v that_o for_o solution_n of_o the_o former_a question_n such_o as_o be_v more_o material_a as_o touch_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o representative_a the_o lawfulness_n of_o their_o proceed_n their_o confirmation_n by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a acceptation_n by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a such_o as_o âs_v necessary_a etc._n etc._n private_a christian_n have_v sufficient_a certainty_n from_o the_o testimony_n that_o after_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n the_o continue_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o of_o its_o governor_n take_v in_o the_o sense_n explain_v before_o §_o 8.12_o &_o disc_n 2_o §_o 23._o or_o also_o meet_v in_o late_a council_n deliver_v thereof_o in_o which_o tradition_n he_o may_v secure_o rest_v and_o supersede_n that_o quest_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o former_a doubt_n with_o which_o other_o must_v needs_o be_v much_o perplex_v who_o have_v not_o the_o humility_n to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o forefather_n §_o 119_o 5_o since_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o its_o governor_n as_o state_v before_o 2.6_o before_o §._o 2.6_o of_o all_o age_n and_o therefore_o that_o of_o the_o present_a age_n be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o necessary_n therefore_o whatever_o former_a council_n and_o their_o definition_n the_o present_a church_n or_o its_o governor_n do_v accept_v and_o own_o christian_n may_v be_v assure_v from_o this_o that_o such_o council_n have_v not_o err_v in_o necessary_n and_o either_o be_v lawful_o general_a and_o oblige_a or_o at_o least_o by_o this_o acceptation_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v render_v equivalent_a thereto_o the_o act_n of_o this_o church_n her_o allow_v their_o decree_n be_v of_o the_o same_o strength_n and_o vigour_n as_o be_v her_o new_a decree_a they_o and_o thus_o for_o such_o council_n the_o former_a inquiry_n become_v frustrate_v note_v that_o i_o understand_v the_o acceptation_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n or_o its_o governor_n in_o the_o sense_n explain_v before_o §_o 11._o etc._n etc._n &_o disc_n 1._o §_o 38._o 6._o but_o last_o though_o a_o sufficient_a certainty_n by_o these_o way_n a_o christian_a may_v have_v concern_v what_o or_o how_o many_o have_v be_v lawful_a general_n council_n or_o equivalent_a thereto_o and_o so_o concern_v their_o
notitiam_fw-la fidei_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o fidem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la habet_fw-la ex_fw-la lumine_fw-la divinae_fw-la scientiae_fw-la quae_fw-la decipi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o biel_n 1._o biel_n in_o 3._o send_v 23_o d._n q._n 2._o a._n 1._o hoc_fw-la autem_fw-la ita_fw-la intelligendum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la scientia_fw-la certior_fw-la sit_fw-la certitudine_fw-la evidentiae_fw-la fides_n verò_fw-la certior_fw-la firmitate_fw-la adhaesionis_fw-la majus_n lumen_fw-la in_o scientiâ_fw-la majus_fw-la robur_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la et_fw-la hoc_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la actus_fw-la imperatus_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la concurrit_fw-la credere_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la actus_fw-la intellectus_fw-la vero_fw-la assentientis_fw-la productus_fw-la ex_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la imperio_fw-la again_o p._n 86._o faith_n say_v he_o be_v a_o evidence_n as_o well_o as_o knowledge_n and_o the_o belief_n be_v firm_a than_o any_o knowledge_n can_v be_v because_o it_o rest_v upon_o divine_a authority_n which_o can_v deceive_v whereas_o knowledge_n or_o at_o least_o he_o that_o think_v he_o know_v be_v not_o ever_o certain_a in_o deduction_n from_o principle_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o shall_v deny_v such_o a_o divine_a or_o infuse_a faith_n wrought_v in_o christian_n by_o god_n spirit_n beside_o and_o beyond_o the_o evidence_n which_o a_o moral_a certainty_n rational_o afford_v let_v they_o declare_v how_o a_o christian_n faith_n be_v necessary_o a_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n where_o there_o be_v no_o effect_n in_o it_o that_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o spirit_n but_o all_o that_o they_o attribute_v to_o it_o be_v necessary_o consequent_a to_o another_o humane_a and_o rational_a evidence_n and_o no_o other_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n of_o the_o divine_a truth_n allege_v by_o they_o than_o of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o julius_n caesar_n viz._n a_o credible_a and_o morally-certain_a tradition_n §_o 125_o 4_o therefore_o concern_v any_o certainty_n or_o assurance_n that_o christian_n be_v necessary_o to_o have_v of_o this_o their_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v true_a and_o infallible_a which_o certitude_n all_o true_a believer_n have_v not_o alike_o 4._o alike_o mat._n 14.31_o s._n thom._n 22._o q._n 5_o a._n 4._o here_o also_o i_o think_v all_o be_v agree_v that_o such_o a_o certainty_n one_o may_v have_v from_o the_o inward_a light_n and_o operation_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n though_o he_o shall_v have_v neither_o any_o internal_a scientifical_a demonstration_n thereof_o which_o if_o he_o have_v it_o be_v not_o faith_n nor_o extrinsical_a infallible_a motive_n testimony_n or_o proponent_n thereof_o whatever_a but_o though_o only_o he_o have_v that_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o true_o a_o divine_a revelation_n for_o the_o object_n thereof_o §_o 126_o 5_o since_o the_o church_n may_v be_v consider_v either_o *_o as_o a_o society_n already_o manifest_v by_o divine_a testimony_n and_o revelation_n whether_o this_o write_v the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o ever_o assist_v and_o guide_v in_o all_o necessary_a truth_n or_o before_o any_o such_o divine_a testimony_n know_v *_o as_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n famous_a in_o wisdom_n innocency_n of_o life_n suffering_n etc._n etc._n thing_n prudential_o move_v we_o to_o credit_v all_o their_o tradition_n both_o church_n here_o agree_v that_o humane_a testimony_n or_o church-tradition_n take_v in_o the_o late_a sense_n in_o its_o make_n know_v to_o we_o what_o be_v these_o divine_a revelation_n or_o this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v only_o introductive_a to_o this_o divine_a faith_n which_o rely_v on_o and_o adhere_v to_o the_o revelation_n hemselves_fw-mi as_o its_o formal_a object_n scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n tradition_n the_o key_n that_o let_v we_o in_o say_v archbp_a lawd_n 86._o lawd_n p._n 86._o divine_a revelation_n write_v or_o unwritten_a be_v the_o formal_a object_n or_o ultimate_v divine_a motive_n into_o which_o we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n tradition_n testify_v or_o manifest_v to_o we_o these_o matter_n reveal_v be_v a_o condition_n and_o prerequisite_a or_o introductive_a for_o the_o application_n of_o our_o faith_n unto_o those_o divine_a revelation_n on_o which_o we_o exercise_v it_o say_v the_o catholic_n §_o 127_o 6_o catholic_n further_o affirm_v that_o as_o the_o church_n be_v consider_v in_o the_o former_a of_o the_o two_o acception_n formention_v the_o infallible_a authority_n and_o testimony_n thereof_o be_v not_o only_o a_o introductive_a into_o but_o one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o this_o divine_a faith_n as_o be_v ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o so_o many_o as_o believe_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o this_o sense_n may_v safe_o resolve_v their_o divine_a faith_n of_o other_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n into_o its_o deliver_v they_o as_o such_o but_o then_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n infallibility_n thus_o believe_v be_v not_o necessary_o the_o ultimate_a principle_n into_o which_o this_o divine_a faith_n of_o other_o article_n be_v resolve_v but_o that_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a by_o which_o this_o church-infallibility_a be_v manifest_v to_o they_o and_o again_o that_o whatever_o this_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o every_o one_o for_o attain_v a_o divine_a authority_n and_o save_a faith_n be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o this_o infallible_a church-authority_n or_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o for_o attain_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a belief_n he_o have_v some_o extrinsical_a motive_n or_o proponent_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o other_o save_o the_o prime_a verity_n of_o which_o he_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v infallible_a which_o thing_n be_v copious_o prove_v by_o many_o learned_a catholic_n a_o few_o of_o who_o testimony_n i_o have_v here_o insert_v which_o the_o reader_n may_v pass_v over_o if_o in_o this_o matter_n satisfy_v §_o 128_o concern_v this_o thus_o cardinal_n lugo_n a_o spanish_a jesuit_n speak_v of_o divine_a faith_n 247._o faith_n tom._n de_fw-fr virtute_fw-la fideidisp_n 1._o §._o 12._o p._n 247._o probatur_fw-la facilè_fw-la quia_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la habere_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la ex_fw-la assistentia_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la creditur_fw-la fidâ_n divinâ_fw-la quae_fw-la docet_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la esse_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ergo_fw-la ante_fw-la ipsius_fw-la fidei_fw-la assensum_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la requiri_fw-la cognitio_fw-la huius_fw-la infallibilis_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la et_fw-la experientia_fw-la docet_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la pueros_fw-la vel_fw-la adultos_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la novo_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la accedunt_fw-la concipere_fw-la muchless_n infallibiliter_fw-la scire_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la hanc_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la &_o assistentiam_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la antequam_fw-la ullum_fw-la alium_fw-la articulum_fw-la credant_fw-la credunt_fw-la enim_fw-la articulos_fw-la in_o ordine_fw-la quo_fw-la proponuntur_fw-la hunc_fw-la autem_fw-la articulum_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la contingit_fw-la credi_fw-la postquam_fw-la alios_fw-la plures_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la solum_fw-la ergo_fw-la potest_fw-la ad_fw-la summum_fw-la praerequiri_fw-la cognoscere_fw-la res_fw-la fidei_fw-la proponi_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la concipiendo_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la secundum_fw-la se_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la maximam_fw-la humanam_fw-la quae_fw-la reperitur_fw-la in_o universâ_fw-la fidelium_fw-la congregatione_fw-la n._n 252._o in_o lege_fw-la naturae_fw-la plures_fw-la credebant_fw-la ex_fw-la solâ_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la parentum_fw-la sine_fw-la aliâ_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la propositione_n deinde_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la scriptô_o plures_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la moysi_n &_o aliis_fw-la prophetis_fw-la antequam_fw-la eorum_fw-la prophetiae_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la reciperentur_fw-la i_o add_v or_o before_o they_o see_v their_o miracle_n or_o the_o fulfil_n of_o their_o prophecy_n §_o 129_o thus_o estius_n §._o estius_n in._n 3._o send_v 23._o d._n 13._o §._o speak_v also_o of_o this_o divine_a and_o salvifical_a faith_n fidei_fw-la impertinens_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la medio_fw-la deus_fw-la utatur_fw-la ad_fw-la conferendum_fw-la homini_fw-la donum_fw-la fidei_fw-la i._n e._n divinae_fw-la quamvis_fw-la enim_fw-la nunc_fw-la ordinarium_fw-la medium_n sit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la testificatio_fw-la &_o doctrina_fw-la constat_fw-la tamen_fw-la aliis_fw-la viis_fw-la seu_fw-la mediis_fw-la fidem_fw-la collatam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la aliquando_fw-la &_o adhuc_fw-la conferri_fw-la etc._n etc._n nam_fw-la antiqui_fw-la multi_fw-la ut_fw-la abraham_n melchizedech_n job_n ex_fw-la speciali_fw-la revelatione_fw-la apostoli_fw-la ex_fw-la christi_fw-la miraculis_fw-la &_o sermone_fw-la yet_o these_o have_v no_o other_o formal_a or_o ultimate_a motive_n of_o their_o faith_n than_o we_o have_v rursus_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la praedicatione_n &_o miraculis_fw-la i_o add_v and_o some_o without_o and_o before_o see_v their_o miracle_n and_o other_o by_o a_o credible_a relation_n only_o not_o sight_n of_o their_o miracle_n yet_o all_o these_o man_n faith_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o efficiency_n alii_fw-la fidem_fw-la conceperunt_fw-la alii_fw-la denique_fw-la aliis_fw-la modis_fw-la crediderant_fw-la cùm_fw-la nondùm_fw-la de_fw-la
round_o fides_n divina_fw-la discursiva_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la circa_fw-la omne_fw-la objecta_fw-la sva_fw-la quia_fw-la alioquin_fw-la sequeretur_fw-la processus_fw-la in_o infinitum_fw-la layman_n p._n 181._o quote_v caietan_n in_o 22._o q._n 1._o art_n 1._o si_fw-la dicas_fw-la assentio_fw-la huic_fw-la revelato_fw-la ex_fw-la fide_fw-la acquisitâ_fw-la tunc_fw-la fides_fw-la infusa_fw-la dependeret_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la &_o infaciendo_fw-la adhaerere_fw-la alicui_fw-la articulo_fw-la à _fw-la fide_fw-la acquisite_a â_fw-la sicut_fw-la à _fw-la principio_fw-la scotus_n l._n 1.23_o d._n §_o contra_fw-la fid_fw-we §_o 145_o 3_o concern_v such_o ultimate_a particular_a divine_a revelation_n whether_o it_o be_v authority_n and_o veracity_n of_o scripture_n or_o authority_n and_o veracity_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o of_o miracle_n if_o we_o say_v further_o that_o we_o ground_n our_o divine_a faith_n of_o it_o upon_o god_n veracity_n or_o because_o god_n be_v true_a and_o can_v lie_v a_o undisputable_a prime_a principle_n yet_o note_n that_o god_n veracity_n alone_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o such_o faith_n of_o any_o particular_a revelation_n since_o on_o this_o veracity_n of_o god_n in_o general_a many_o false_a religion_n also_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v ground_v i._n e._n many_o false_a religion_n believe_v that_o whatever_o god_n say_v be_v true_a and_o further_o believe_v but_o false_o that_o god_n have_v say_v what_o they_o be_v teach_v unless_o another_o proposition_n be_v join_v with_o it_o viz._n that_o god_n who_o be_v thus_o true_a and_o can_v lie_v in_o whatever_o he_o say_v have_v also_o say_v this_o particular_a thing_n which_o we_o believe_v namely_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n or_o apostle_n or_o scripture_n our_o particular_a ultimate_a ground_n name_v before_o be_v true_a of_o which_o thus_o card._n lugo_n 7._o lugo_n de_fw-fr virtute_fw-la fidei_fw-la divin_fw-fr disp_n 1._o §._o 7._o duplex_fw-la est_fw-la ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la partialis_fw-la cvi_fw-la ultimò_fw-la fides_fw-la divina_fw-la nititur_fw-la 1._o deus_fw-la est_fw-la prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la et_fw-la 2._o deus_fw-mi it_o a_o dixit_fw-la and_o we_o know_v the_o certitude_n of_o any_o conclusion_n must_v always_o be_v build_v on_o two_o premise_n or_o principle_n and_o then_o let_v the_o first_o pass_v unquestioned_a deus_fw-la est_fw-la prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la the_o second_o that_o god_n have_v say_v this_o or_o that_o must_v either_o be_v ground_v that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n on_o some_o other_o divine_a revelation_n from_o which_o we_o collect_v that_o he_o have_v say_v it_o which_o still_o will_v proceed_v to_o the_o inquiry_n after_o another_o divine_a revelation_n on_o which_o to_o ground_n that_o or_o else_o i_o must_v rest_v there_o with_o a_o immediate_a assent_n to_o it_o and_o acknowledge_v that_o i_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n that_o he_o have_v say_v it_o which_o rely_v on_o any_o other_o divine_a revelation_n and_o then_o why_o may_v i_o not_o have_v rest_v as_o well_o in_o the_o forename_a revelation_n last_o concern_v that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o by_o due_a consequence_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o ultimate_n resolvent_fw-la of_o a_o christian_a faith_n those_o who_o disallow_v that_o which_o other_o assign_v let_v they_o assign_v another_o such_o as_o be_v true_o a_o divine_a revelation_n and_o not_o mistake_v only_o by_o they_o to_o be_v so_o as_o assign_v the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n take_v by_o they_o in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o suffice_v §_o 146_o 4_o i_o take_v this_o also_o for_o agree_v on_o by_o all_o that_o the_o internal_a efficient_a of_o all_o faith_n divine_a be_v the_o power_n or_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n both_o *_o illuminate_n the_o understanding_n that_o the_o prime_a verity_n can_v lie_v in_o whatever_o thing_n it_o reveal_v if_o perhaps_o the_o understanding_n herein_o need_v any_o light_n and_o also_o that_o the_o particular_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v its_o revelation_n *_o and_o persuade_v and_o operate_n in_o the_o will_v such_o a_o firm_a adherence_n unto_o these_o article_n as_o many_o time_n far_o exceed_v that_o of_o any_o humane_a science_n or_o demonstration_n §_o 147_o 5_o now_o then_o if_o any_o christian_a be_v ask_v concern_v the_o ultimate_a resolution_n of_o his_o divine_a faith_n as_o to_o the_o extrinsical_a prime_a motive_n ground_n reason_n or_o principle_n thereof_o that_o equal_v in_o certainty_n the_o faith_n build_v on_o it_o he_o can_v allege_v none_o other_o than_o that_o particular_a divine_a revelation_n which_o be_v first_o make_v know_v to_o he_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o matter_n not_o since_o this_o vary_v as_o to_o several_a person_n or_o from_o which_o in_o build_v of_o his_o faith_n he_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n again_o if_o any_o ask_v concern_v the_o internal_a efficient_a of_o such_o faith_n as_o be_v divine_a the_o answer_n must_v always_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o the_o divine_a faith_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n §_o 148_o 6_o the_o motive_n foremention_v which_o be_v such_o a_o rational_a evidence_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o the_o several_a article_n thereof_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o no_o other_o foreign_a religion_n or_o sâct_n in_o christianity_n can_v produce_v do_v serve_v indeed_o antecedent_o for_o a_o introductive_a to_o or_o after_o it_o introduce_v for_o a_o confirmative_a of_o this_o divine_a faith_n i._n e._n to_o make_v it_o credible_a or_o acceptable_a to_o humane_a reason_n my_o own_o or_o other_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v true_a and_o no_o way_n liable_a to_o error_n that_o i_o be_o assure_v in_o it_o by_o the_o holy_a and_o no_o seduce_v spirit_n but_o not_o to_o constitute_v it_o in_o the_o notion_n of_o faith_n divine_a because_o the_o faith_n so_o style_v be_v suppose_v to_o rest_v always_o on_o a_o high_a ground_n viz._n revelation_n divine_a §_o 149_o and_o by_o what_o have_v be_v here_o say_v i_o think_v you_o may_v perceive_v the_o circle_n clear_o avoid_v which_o be_v still_o so_o hot_o charge_v on_o catholic_n though_o not_o for_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o general_n which_o rest_v in_o the_o last_o place_n on_o the_o prudential_a motive_n yet_o for_o the_o resolution_n at_o least_o of_o the_o divine_a faith_n they_o pretend_v to_o for_o if_o a_o protestant_n ask_v at_o large_a why_o i_o believe_v without_o insert_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v answer_v because_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n or_o divine_a revelation_n a_o thing_n concede_v by_o the_o archbp_a 81._o archbp_a p._n 81._o testify_v it_o to_o be_v so_o again_o if_o ask_v why_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o such_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n which_o i_o believe_v in_o this_o matter_n infallible_a or_o not_o err_v deliver_v such_o tradition_n to_o i_o and_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v again_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a in_o this_o it_o be_v answer_v i_o believe_v she_o but_o this_o be_v by_o a_o acquisite_a faith_n to_o be_v so_o from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n foremention_v 121._o foremention_v §._o 121._o which_o do_v so_o persuade_v i_o but_o note_n that_o this_o acquisite_a faith_n be_v not_o a_o necessary_a prerequisite_a to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n for_o as_o layman_n 5._o layman_n theol._n moral_a l._n 2._o tract_n 1._o c._n 5._o non_fw-fr omnes_fw-la eodem_fw-la modo_fw-la sed_fw-la alii_fw-la aliter_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la christi_fw-la amplectendam_fw-la moventur_fw-la and_o as_o estius_n before_o 129._o before_o see_v §._o 129._o fidei_fw-la impertinens_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la medio_fw-la deus_fw-la utatur_fw-la ad_fw-la conferendum_fw-la homini_fw-la donum_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o in_o all_o this_o protestant_n confess_v there_o be_v no_o circle_n 126._o circle_n see_v stillingf_n p._n 126._o §_o 150_o but_o if_o now_o put_v in_o the_o word_n divine_a the_o protestant_n 127._o protestant_n id_fw-la p._n 127._o ask_v i_o again_o the_o two_o former_a question_n why_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o upon_o the_o former_a answer_n return_v ask_v i_o why_o 2_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i._n e._n with_o such_o a_o firm_a assent_n as_o i_o give_v thereto_o transcend_v that_o of_o a_o acquisite_a faith_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o which_o the_o church_n relate_v as_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v so_o indeed_o i_o answer_v now_o that_o i_o final_o rest_v on_o this_o revelation_n without_o have_v any_o other_o whereon_o to_o ground_v it_o but_o if_o ask_v why_o so_o firm_o and_o if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v divine_o without_o any_o further_a
but_o here_o seem_v no_o necessity_n of_o pretend_v any_o other_o infallibility_n in_o these_o motive_n than_o catholic_n writer_n have_v former_o maintain_v and_o the_o adversary_n also_o allow_v on_o which_o a_o acquire_v or_o humane_a faith_n secure_o rest_v these_o motive_n carry_v such_o a_o evidence_n with_o they_o as_o no_o other_o religion_n differ_v from_o the_o christian_a nor_o in_o christianity_n any_o sect_n divide_v from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n can_v upon_o any_o rational_a account_n equal_a 2_o that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n and_o believe_v by_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v a_o main_a ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n for_o any_o other_o article_n thereof_o that_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o same_o church_n definition_n where_o the_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n apostolic_a be_v to_o he_o but_o i_o say_v not_o the_o church_n doubtful_a of_o which_o ground_n and_o assurance_n of_o such_o point_n believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n the_o protestant_n faith_n be_v destitute_a 3_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o such_o article_n ground_v thus_o on_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n be_v by_o this_o ground_v also_o on_o divine_a revelation_n where_v note_n that_o resolve_v faith_n into_o the_o church_n infallibility_n i_o mean_v as_o the_o church_n be_v declare_v thus_o infallible_a in_o necessary_n by_o god_n word_n or_o divine_a revelation_n whether_o write_v the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n apostolical_a or_o into_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o into_o scripture_n be_v in_o general_a all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o resolution_n i._n e._n into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o ultimate_o be_v only_o believe_v a_o thing_n because_o god_n say_v it_o say_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o also_o out_o of_o they_o by_o his_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n by_o it_o i_o say_v as_o declare_v by_o god_n word_n to_o be_v also_o infallible_o assist_v true_o to_o relate_v and_o expound_v what_o the_o apostle_n or_o scripture_n have_v former_o say_v where_o still_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v into_o the_o same_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o these_o and_o not_o into_o any_o proper_a authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o deliverer_n and_o when_o we_o say_v we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n or_o of_o the_o apostle_n we_o mean_v into_o god_n infallible_a word_n deliver_v mediate_o by_o the_o one_o or_o immediate_o by_o the_o other_o and_o whilst_o to_o one_o that_o ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n i_o answer_v because_o those_o who_o write_v they_o be_v assist_v by_o god_n spirit_n to_o deliver_v to_o man_n those_o divine_a revelation_n and_o again_o to_o one_o that_o ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n be_v for_o ever_o assist_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n faithful_o to_o relate_v and_o expound_v these_o former_a divine_a revelation_n deliver_v by_o those_o who_o write_v the_o scripture_n in_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n here_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o if_o one_o of_o these_o resolution_n be_v into_o divine_a revelation_n impart_v and_o communicate_v to_o man_n by_o god_n spirit_n so_o must_v the_o other_o though_o the_o manner_n of_o convey_v they_o to_o we_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v different_a as_o be_v explain_v before_o §_o 109._o and_o have_v the_o new_a testament_n scripture_n not_o be_v write_v as_o they_o may_v have_v be_v not_o write_v without_o nullify_a the_o being_n of_o christian_a religion_n than_o all_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n will_v have_v be_v only_o into_o the_o unwritten_a testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o they_o of_o the_o church_n follow_v they_o to_o which_o church_n for_o ever_o though_o without_o any_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o same_o promise_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o write_n of_o these_o scripture_n sure_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o these_o promise_n and_o next_o these_o promise_n may_v also_o have_v be_v make_v know_v to_o christian_n by_o tradition_n apostolical_a relate_v only_o by_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o same_o credence_n must_v have_v be_v give_v to_o this_o tradition_n apostolical_a relate_v by_o the_o church_n concern_v such_o promise_n make_v to_o it_o as_o be_v now_o give_v to_o the_o scripture_n testify_v it_o 4_o yet_o that_o this_o church-infallibility_a or_o that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o establish_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_o the_o first_o or_o the_o ultimate_a divine_a revelation_n into_o which_o every_o catholick_n faith_n concern_v any_o particular_a point_n of_o his_o belief_n be_v necessary_o resolve_v for_o the_o divine_a faith_n of_o several_a person_n concern_v particular_a point_n may_v have_v a_o various_a resolution_n as_o they_o come_v by_o divers_a way_n or_o from_o divers_a principle_n to_o believe_v it_o and_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v save_o believe_v without_o the_o present_a knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o another_o whereon_o it_o have_v dependence_n as_o one_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n either_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o apostolical_a tradition_n one_o before_o the_o other_o as_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v first_o propose_v to_o they_o of_o which_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 128.145_o and_o by_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o faith_n ground_v thereon_o attain_v eternal_a salvation_n and_o bless_v be_v his_o divine_a majesty_n for_o so_o firm_o establish_v christianity_n one_o these_o two_o sure_a base_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n for_o both_o be_v pillar_n of_o truth_n 3.15_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3.15_o and_o both_o always_o bear_v witness_n as_o to_o it_o so_o also_o to_o one_o another_o and_o what_o thou_o have_v thus_o join_v o_o lord_n let_v no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o separate_v nor_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n ever_o so_o far_o prevail_v against_o they_o as_o that_o any_o shall_v prosper_v in_o their_o endeavour_n to_o build_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o other_o amen_n §_o thus_o much_o be_v say_v concern_v the_o necessary_a resolution_n of_o a_o catholick_n faith_n conclusion_n the_o conclusion_n and_o in_o satisfaction_n to_o those_o other_o objection_n that_o be_v urge_v against_o a_o live_a ecclesiastical_a infallible_a guide_n in_o all_o necessary_n maintain_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o affirm_v also_o easy_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o pretender_n after_o all_o which_o in_o the_o last_o place_n the_o protestant_a reader_n be_v humble_o desire_v sober_o to_o consider_v with_o himself_o whether_o if_o indeed_o there_o be_v such_o a_o catholic_n unfailing_a guide_n as_o be_v here_o pretend_a and_o that_o church_n also_o who_o conduct_n he_o have_v renounce_v be_v it_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v leave_v amid_o the_o distraction_n of_o so_o many_o sect_n and_o opinion_n to_o bring_v man_n by_o a_o sure_a way_n to_o heaven_n whether_o i_o say_v notwithstanding_o all_o those_o reason_n and_o argument_n that_o have_v be_v here_o and_o be_v elsewhere_o by_o catholic_n frequent_o urge_v in_o demonstration_n thereof_o yet_o his_o ignorance_n thereof_o still_o remain_v so_o innocent_a and_o invincible_a that_o he_o dare_v rely_v on_o this_o plea_n at_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o his_o live_n and_o die_v irreconcile_a unto_o she_o because_o no_o sufficient_a evidence_n have_v be_v leave_v he_o to_o discern_v she_o and_o next_o to_o consider_v whether_o if_o indeed_o she_o be_v what_o here_o she_o be_v pretend_v there_o can_v be_v any_o secular_a interest_n so_o valuable_a as_o any_o way_n to_o recompense_v the_o loss_n he_o sustain_v in_o his_o present_a separation_n from_o this_o church_n by_o forego_v all_o that_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o growth_n in_o grace_n and_o advantage_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n which_o he_o may_v with_o great_a spiritual_a content_n enjoy_v in_o her_o happy_a bosom_n of_o which_o advantage_n because_o they_o be_v by_o few_o of_o those_o depart_v from_o this_o church_n so_o well_o weigh_v as_o they_o ought_v for_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o beg_v leave_v not_o to_o stay_v only_o in_o universals_z but_o to_o represent_v some_o particular_n to_o the_o beget_n in_o he_o by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n a_o holy_a emulation_n and_o longing_n for_o the_o re-fruition_n of_o they_o and_o a_o great_a resentment_n of_o his_o present_a impediment_n and_o defect_n §_o 155_o let_v he_o then_o in_o the_o name_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n consider_v the_o great_a benefit_n as_o to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o salvation_n which_o he_o may_v happy_o enjoy_v in_o this_o church_n by_o these_o particular_n follow_v *_o by_o
of_o their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n word_n understand_v with_o piety_n and_o the_o fetch_v their_o definition_n regular_o from_o the_o sense_n thereof_o which_o the_o general_a church_n have_v receive_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n 96._o apostle_n of_o heresy_n p._n 96._o upon_o which_o follow_v that_o in_o such_o case_n where_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n do_v not_o so_o as_o possible_o it_o may_v and_o inferior_n be_v to_o consider_v for_o themselves_o whether_o it_o do_v not_o there_o may_v be_v no_o heretical_a autocatacrifie_n in_o a_o descent_n from_o it_o nor_o this_o dissent_n a_o evidence_n of_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d his_o be_v pervert_v and_o sin_v wilful_o and_o without_o excuse_n last_o thus_o mr._n stillingfleet_n concern_v heresy_n 73._o heresy_n p._n 73._o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o heresy_n be_v deny_v something_o suppose_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o therefore_o 2_o none_o can_v reasonable_o be_v accuse_v of_o heresy_n but_o such_o as_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o that_o which_o they_o deny_v be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o therefore_o 3_o none_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v any_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o whatever_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n definition_n can_v make_v any_o heretic_n but_o such_o as_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o her_o definition_n from_o hence_o also_o he_o gather_v that_o protestant_n be_v in_o less_o danger_n of_o heresy_n than_o papist_n till_o these_o give_v they_o more_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o whatever_o the_o church_n declare_v be_v certain_o reveal_v by_o god_n thus_o he_o now_o such_o sufficient_a prove_v reason_n as_o protestant_n plead_v that_o papist_n have_v not_o yet_o give_v they_o concern_v this_o matter_n of_o church-authority_n i_o allege_v that_o neither_o have_v they_o nor_o other_o give_v i_o to_o be_v self-condemned_n therefore_o in_o my_o dissent_n from_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a i_o must_v first_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n propose_v to_o i_o to_o believe_v and_o so_o to_o remain_v self-condemned_n and_o heretical_a in_o disbelieve_v it_o this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o church_n or_o her_o council_n have_v power_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o to_o require_v my_o assent_n thereto_o which_o so_o long_o as_o i_o find_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v i_o suppose_v i_o be_o free_v without_o obstinacy_n or_o heresy_n or_o be_v therein_o self-condemned_n from_o yield_v assent_n to_o any_o particular_a matter_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o church_n define_v and_o have_v i_o sufficient_a reason_n propose_v to_o i_o for_o believe_v this_o point_n yet_o so_o long_o as_o i_o be_o not_o actual_o convince_v thereof_o i_o become_v only_o guilty_a of_o a_o fault_n of_o ignorance_n not_o obstinacy_n or_o autocatacrisie_n or_o heresy_n for_o if_o i_o be_o self-condemned_n or_o guilty_a of_o obstinacy_n in_o disbelieve_v the_o foresay_a point_n 99_o point_n see_v mr._n stillingf_n p._n 99_o then_o i_o become_v so_o either_o by_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o this_o point_n or_o without_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o this_o it_o can_v be_v for_o this_o very_a power_n of_o define_v be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v clear_v to_o i_o by_o the_o church_n define_v it_o 74_o it_o still_o p._n 74_o and_o thus_o that_o thing_n be_v propose_v to_o i_o in_o the_o definition_n to_o be_v believe_v which_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o i_o already_o before_o such_o proposal_n or_o definition_n or_o else_o the_o definition_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v 99_o believe_v ib._n p._n 99_o nor_o without_o or_o before_o such_o definition_n can_v i_o have_v a_o autocatacrisie_n because_o this_o autocatacrisy_n you_o say_v with_o dr._n hammond_n arise_v from_o my_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n prot._n methinks_v you_o make_v the_o same_o plea_n for_o yourself_o in_o this_o matter_n as_o if_o one_o that_o be_v question_v for_o not_o obey_v the_o divine_a precept_n or_o not_o believe_v the_o divine_a revelation_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n shall_v think_v to_o excuse_v himself_o by_o this_o answer_n that_o indeed_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o therefore_o he_o conceive_v that_o he_o can_v reasonable_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v therein_o and_o as_o such_o a_o person_n have_v as_o much_o reason_n though_o this_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n yet_o from_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n as_o to_o believe_v what_o be_v write_v in_o it_o so_o have_v you_o though_o not_o from_o the_o nicen_n council_n define_v it_o yet_o from_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n manifest_v it_o as_o much_o reason_n to_o believe_v its_o authority_n of_o define_v as_o what_o it_o define_v it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o have_v you_o not_o sufficient_a proposal_n or_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o know_v this_o your_o duty_n of_o assent_n to_o this_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a you_o be_v faultless_a in_o it_o but_o herein_o lie_v your_o danger_n that_o from_o find_v a_o non_fw-fr actual_a conviction_n of_o the_o truth_n within_o hinder_v there_o by_o i_o know_v not_o what_o supine_n negligence_n or_o strong_a self-conceit_n etc._n etc._n you_o gather_v a_o non_fw-fr sufficient_a proposal_n without_o §_o 37_o soc._n it_o remain_v then_o to_o inquire_v who_o shall_v judge_v concern_v this_o sufficient_a proposal_n or_o sufficient_a reason_n which_o i_o be_o say_v to_o have_v to_o believe_v what_o the_o nicen_n council_n or_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v in_o this_o point_n 73._o point_n stillingf_n p._n 73._o whether_o the_o church_n judgement_n be_v to_o be_v take_v by_o i_o in_o this_o or_o my_o own_o make_a use_n of_o if_o her_o judgement_n the_o ground_n of_o my_o belief_n and_o of_o heresy_n lie_v still_o in_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o thus_o it_o will_v be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n whether_o i_o believe_v what_o she_o declare_v without_o sufficient_a reason_n or_o learn_v this_o of_o she_o when_o there_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v so_o it_o must_v be_v then_o my_o own_o judgement_n i_o be_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o in_o this_o matter_n 479._o matter_n see_v still_a p._n 479._o and_o if_o so_o than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v that_o god_n do_v both_o afford_v i_o some_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v mistake_v therein_o and_o also_o some_o certain_a knowledge_n when_o i_o do_v use_v this_o mean_n aright_o for_o without_o these_o two_o i_o can_v have_v no_o security_n in_o my_o own_o judgement_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o high_a concernment_n as_o heresy_n and_o fundamental_a faith_n be_v now_o this_o mean_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o presume_v i_o have_v daily_o use_v in_o that_o i_o find_v my_o conscience_n after_o much_o examination_n therein_o to_o acquit_v i_o unless_o you_o can_v prescribe_v i_o some_o other_o sure_a evidence_n without_o send_v i_o back_o again_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n prot._n whilst_o your_o discovery_n of_o your_o tenant_n to_o be_v a_o heresy_n depend_v on_o your_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v it_o be_v so_o and_o 2_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o have_v or_o not_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v this_o be_v leave_v to_o yourself_o the_o church_n have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v you_o or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n till_o they_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o and_o thus_o in_o strive_v to_o free_v yourself_o from_o heresy_n you_o have_v free_v all_o mankind_n from_o it_o as_o to_o any_o external_a discovery_n and_o convincement_n thereof_o and_o cancel_v such_o a_o sin_n unless_o we_o can_v find_v one_o that_o will_v confess_v himself_o to_o maintain_v a_o thing_n against_o his_o own_o conscience_n soc._n if_o i_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n for_o they_o also_o hold_v none_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v any_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o what_o ever_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o of_o this_o sufficient_a reason_n they_o make_v not_o the_o church_n or_o superior_n but_o themselves_o the_o judge_n the_o v._o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n 5._o prot._n i_o have_v yet_o one_o thing_n more_o about_o which_o to_o question_v you_o if_o you_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v your_o opinion_n heresy_n in_o oppose_v the_o public_a judgement_n §_o 28_o and_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n
for_o his_o be_v absolve_v from_o mortal_a sin_n but_o also_o to_o seek_v a_o release_n from_o excommunication_n incur_v for_o his_o reinjoy_v the_o church_n communion_n thus_o you_o see_v a_o rigour_n in_o this_o church_n towards_o what_o it_o once_o account_v heresy_n much_o different_a from_o the_o more_o mild_a spirit_n and_o moderate_a temper_n of_o the_o reform_a §_o 41_o to_o conclude_v for_o the_o enjoy_n the_o protestant_a communion_n i_o conceive_v that_o as_o to_o any_o necessary_a approbation_n of_o her_o doctrine_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o hold_v with_o mr._n chillingworth_n as_o i_o do_v 39_o do_v chillingw_n preface_n §_o 39_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n though_o not_o that_o of_o all_o of_o they_o absolute_o true_a yet_o be_v free_a from_o all_o impiety_n and_o from_o all_o error_n destructive_a to_o salvation_n or_o in_o itself_o damnable_a and_o 28._o and_o ib_v §_o 28._o whatsoever_o have_v be_v hold_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o protestant_n or_o even_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o indeed_o have_v give_v no_o certain_a catalogue_n at_o all_o of_o such_o necessary_n that_o against_o the_o socinian_o and_o all_o other_o whatsoever_o i_o do_v very_o believe_v and_o embrace_v and_o which_o be_v still_o the_o same_o 39_o same_o ib._n §_o 39_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v so_o pure_a and_o orthodox_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v it_o and_o live_v according_a to_o it_o undoubted_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o if_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v hold_v in_o it_o then_o so_o be_v no_o error_n opposite_a or_o destructive_a to_o salvation_n hold_v by_o it_o and_o so_o live_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n it_o hold_v i_o may_v be_v save_v again_n ib._n again_n ib._n i_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o error_n in_o it_o which_o may_v necessitate_v or_o warrant_v any_o man_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n or_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o for_o though_o i_o believe_v antisocinianism_n a_o error_n yet_o if_o i_o hold_v it_o not_o such_o as_o that_o for_o it_o any_o man_n may_v disturb_v the_o peace_n or_o aught_o to_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n i_o may_v profess_v all_o this_o and_o yet_o hold_v socinianism_n last_o as_o he_o 376_o he_o chill_n p._n 376_o so_o i_o propose_v i_o any_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n seem_v it_o never_o so_o incomprehensible_a i_o will_v subscribe_v it_o with_o hand_n and_o heart_n in_o other_o thing_n that_o i_o think_v not_o contain_v in_o this_o book_n i_o will_v take_v no_o man_n liberty_n of_o jud_v gment_n from_o he_o neither_o shall_v any_o man_n take_v i_o from_o i_o for_o i_o be_o full_o assure_v that_o god_n do_v not_o and_o therefore_o that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o require_v any_o more_o of_o any_o man_n than_o this_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n to_o endeavour_n to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o and_o to_o live_v according_a to_o it_o without_o pertinacy_n i_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n and_o 57_o and_o ib._n §._o 57_o endeavour_v to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n i_o can_v but_z hold_v my_o error_n without_o pertinacy_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v it_o when_o a_o more_o true_a and_o a_o more_o probable_a sense_n shall_v appear_v unto_o i_o and_o then_o all_o necessary_a truth_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n i_o be_o certain_a by_o believe_v scripture_n to_o believe_v all_o necessary_a truth_n and_o in_o do_v so_o my_o life_n be_v answerable_a to_o my_o faith_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a i_o shall_v fail_v of_o salvation_n thus_o mr._n chillingworth_n speak_v perfect_o my_o sense_n prot._n i_o see_v no_o other_o cure_n for_o you_o but_o that_o you_o learn_v humility_n and_o mortification_n of_o your_o understanding_n in_o which_o lie_v the_o most_o subtle_a and_o perilous_a of_o all_o pride_n and_o it_o will_v reduce_v you_o to_o obedience_n and_o this_o to_o truth_n that_o with_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n you_o may_v give_v glory_n to_o god_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n coessential_a with_o god_n the_o father_n to_o which_o trinity_n in_o unity_n as_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o be_v now_o so_o shall_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n be_v give_v throughout_o all_o future_a age_n amen_n finis_fw-la addenda_fw-la page_n 30._o line_n 31._o after_o turkey_n add._n brerewood_n brerw_n enquir_n p._n 84._o &_o 88_o compute_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_n in_o asia_n include_v also_o those_o unite_a with_o rome_n not_o to_o amount_v to_o a_o twenty_o part_n of_o its_o inhabitant_n and_o all_o the_o turk_n dominion_n in_o europe_n not_o to_o exceed_v the_o magnitude_n of_o spain_n ib._n p._n 67._o throughout_o who_o dominion_n also_o the_o chief_a etc._n etc._n page_n 30._o line_n penult_n after_o field_n p._n 63._o add._n and_o brerewood_n inquire_v c._n 19_o p._n 147._o page_n 31_o line_n 17_o after_o reside_v add._n to_o which_o in_o the_o last_o place_n may_v be_v add_v that_o great_a body_n of_o the_o same_o communion_n that_o have_v long_o flourish_v and_o daily_o enlarge_v itself_o throughout_o the_o west-indies_n page_n 51_o line_n 4._o after_o practice_n add._n to_o all_o these_o may_v be_v further_o add_v the_o early_a condemnation_n that_o be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n of_o those_o modern_a tenant_n of_o several_a protestant_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o subordination_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n to_o the_o utility_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o invocation_n of_o the_o saint_n veneration_n of_o saint_n relic_n set_v fasting-day_n festival_n vigil_n abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n monastic_a vow_n especial_o that_o of_o virginity_n and_o celibacy_n hermitage_n disparity_n of_o the_o celestial_a reward_n and_o degree_n of_o glory_n the_o maintainer_n of_o which_o long_o ago_o arrius_n vid._n epiphan_n haer._n 75._o august_n haer._n 53._o jovinian_a vid._n hieron_n contra_fw-la jovin_n austin_n haer._n 82._o vigilantius_n vid._n hieronym_n contra_fw-la vigilant_a be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n i._n e._n as_o opposer_n of_o those_o point_n that_o the_o general_a church_n practise_v receive_v and_o allow_v as_o lawful_a by_o the_o father_n of_o those_o time_n and_o be_v crush_v by_o their_o censure_n be_v prevent_v from_o receive_v any_o further_a sentence_n from_o a_o council_n last_o why_o be_v there_o make_v a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n at_o least_o for_o many_o of_o these_o point_n etc._n etc._n page_n 66_o line_n 19_o after_o himself_o add._n and_o so_o this_o person_n suppose_v by_o protestant_n to_o have_v be_v raise_v up_o by_o god_n to_o vindicate_v his_o truth_n yet_o be_v permit_v by_o he_o to_o die_v in_o their_o conceit_n a_o desertor_n of_o it_o i._n e._n reconcile_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 93_o line_n ult_n after_o exordium_n unitatis_fw-la add._n the_o ecclesiasticalunity_n in_o which_o bishop_n grotius_n conceive_v so_o necessary_a as_o that_o he_o say_v rivet_n apol._n discussio_fw-la p._n 255._o non_fw-la posse_fw-la protestant_n inter_v se_fw-la jungi_fw-la nisi_fw-la simul_fw-la jung_fw-la antur_fw-la cum_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la sedi_fw-la romanae_fw-la coherent_a sine_fw-la qua_fw-la say_v he_o nullum_fw-la sperari_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la common_a regimen_fw-la again_o inter_fw-la causas_fw-la divulsionis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la non_fw-it esse_fw-la primatum_fw-la episcopi_fw-la romani_fw-la secundùm_fw-la canon_n favente_fw-la melancthone_n qui_fw-la eum_fw-la primatum_fw-la etiam_fw-la necessarium_fw-la putat_fw-la ad_fw-la retinendam_fw-la unitatem_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la subjicere_fw-la pontificis_fw-la libidini_fw-la sed_fw-la reponere_fw-la ordinem_fw-la sapienter_fw-la institutum_fw-la thus_o moderate_a protestant_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n found_v supreme_o as_o to_o single_a person_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n page_n 96_o line_n 15._o after_o coeteris_fw-la add._n and_o according_o in_o all_o those_o instance_n gather_v out_o of_o antiquity_n by_o archbishop_n lawd_n §_o 24._o n._n 5._o where_o inferior_a synod_n have_v reform_v abuse_n in_o manner_n or_o make_v decree_n in_o cause_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v willing_o grant_v many_o have_v do_v it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o of_o they_o have_v do_v either_o of_o these_o in_o matter_n state_v before_o contrary_o by_o a_o superior_a authority_n a_o thing_n with_o which_o protestant_n be_v charge_v something_o be_v then_o state_v or_o reform_v by_o inferior_n without_o nothing_o against_o their_o superior_n page_n 103_o line_n 36._o after_o time_n add._n baron_n say_v a._n d._n 358._o that_o in_o tantâ_fw-la errorum_fw-la offusâ_fw-la caligine_fw-la qui_fw-la substantiae_fw-la filii_fw-la dei_fw-la assertores_fw-la essent_fw-la a_o nostris_fw-la in_o pretio_fw-la habebantur_fw-la ut_fw-la pote_fw-la quod_fw-la ut_fw-la soepius_fw-la est_fw-la dictum_fw-la nullâ_fw-la aliâ_fw-la re_fw-la viderentur_fw-la a_o catholicis_fw-la differre_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la vocem_fw-la consubstantialitatis_fw-la non_fw-la admitterent_fw-la page_n 104_o line_n 8_o after_z mention_v add._n so_o but_o that_o the_o word_n be_v well_o capable_a of_o a_o orthodox_n sense_n so_o that_o the_o seventeen_o and_o twenty_o six_o article_n in_o the_o first_o sirmian_n confession_n as_o they_o be_v understand_v by_o sozomen_n in_o the_o semi-arrian_a l._n 5._o c._n so_o be_v they_o compare_v with_o the_o antecedent_n expound_v by_o st._n hillary_n de_fw-fr synodis_fw-la in_o a_o catholic_n sense_n the_o semi-arrian_a bishop_n it_o seem_v etc._n etc._n page_n 125_o line_n ult_n after_o errores_fw-la add._n and_o ib._n q._n 5._o a._n 3._o omnibus_fw-la articulis_fw-la fidei_fw-la inhaeret_fw-la fidei_fw-la propter_fw-la unum_fw-la medium_n sci_fw-la propter_fw-la veritatem_fw-la primam_fw-la propositam_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la in_o scripture_n secundùm_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sane_fw-la intelligendis_fw-la see_v several_a authority_n to_o this_o purpose_n collect_v by_o fr._n a_o s._n clara_n in_o system_n fid._n c._n 7._o page_n 206_o line_n 3._o after_o accesserunt_fw-la add._n concern_v 1_o the_o corruption_n of_o humane_a nature_n and_o bondage_n under_o sin_n 2_o justification_n gratuital_n and_o 3_o christ_n sacerdotal_a office_n thus_o he_o censure_v ancient_a church-tradition_n resp_n ad_fw-la cassand_n offic_n pii_fw-la viri_fw-la in_o cassand_n oper_n p._n 802._o verum_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o controversiam_fw-la vocetur_fw-la quia_fw-la flexibile_fw-la est_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o holy_a scripture_n inter_fw-la nasi_fw-la cerei_fw-la si_fw-la absque_fw-la traditionis_fw-la subsidio_fw-la quicquam_fw-la definire_fw-la fas_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la quid_fw-la jam_fw-la fiet_fw-la praeciput_v fidei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la capitibus_fw-la tria_fw-la solum_fw-la exempli_fw-la causa_fw-la proferam_fw-la 1._o naturae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la corruptio_fw-la &_o miserable_fw-la animae_fw-la servitus_fw-la sub_fw-la peccati_fw-la tyrannide_fw-la 2._o gratuita_fw-la justificatio_fw-la 3._o et_fw-la christi_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la apud_fw-la vetustissimos_fw-la scriptores_fw-la ita_fw-la obscurè_fw-la attingitur_fw-la ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la inde_fw-la certitudo_fw-la possit_fw-la elici_fw-la si_fw-la ex_fw-la eorum_fw-la traditione_n haurienda_fw-la sit_fw-la cognitio_fw-la salutis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la jacebit_fw-la omuis_fw-la fiducia_n quia_fw-la ex_fw-la illis_fw-la nunquam_fw-la discemus_fw-la quomodo_fw-la deo_fw-la reconciliemur_fw-la quomodo_fw-la illuminemur_fw-la a_o spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o formemur_fw-la in_o obsequium_fw-la justitiae_fw-la quomodo_fw-la gratis_o accepta_fw-la nobis_fw-la feratur_fw-la christi_fw-la obedientia_fw-la quid_fw-la valeat_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la mortis_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la intercessio_fw-la quarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la luculenta_fw-la explicatio_fw-la in_o scripturâ_fw-la passim_fw-la occurrit_fw-la itaque_fw-la novo_fw-la hoc_fw-la magistro_fw-la cassandr_n authore_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la apprimè_fw-la cognitu_fw-la necessaria_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la tantùm_fw-la manebunt_fw-la semisepulta_a sed_fw-la quia_fw-la nulla_fw-la traditio_fw-la suffragatur_fw-la i._n e._n in_o antiquity_n certitudine_fw-la carebunt_fw-la thus_o he_o and_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o of_o such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o many_o protestant_n deliver_v in_o these_o matter_n no_o footstep_n will_v be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n and_o that_o nulla_fw-la traditio_fw-la suffragabitur_fw-la page_n 230_o line_n 35._o after_o censetur_fw-la add._n and_o ib._n q._n 5._o be_v 3._o si_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la pertinaciter_fw-la discredit_n articulum_fw-la fidei_fw-la paratus_fw-la sequi_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la haereticus_fw-la sed_fw-la solùm_fw-la errans_fw-la page_n 342_o line_n 28._o after_o prot._n add._n no_o person_n that_o be_v appoint_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n in_o any_o controversy_n as_o those_o bishop_n you_o have_v mention_v be_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o arrius_n can_v right_o or_o proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v on_o that_o side_n for_o which_o he_o give_v sentence_n a_o party_n nor_o do_v their_o give_a sentence_n once_o against_o any_o side_n prejudice_v they_o as_o enemy_n or_o opposite_n or_o interest_v from_o sit_v on_o the_o bench_n as_o oft_o as_o need_n require_v to_o pass_v it_o again_o alone_o or_o with_o other_o but_o if_o every_o one_o may_v be_v afterward_o call_v a_o anti-party_n who_o once_o declare_v himself_o of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n i_o perceive_v etc._n etc._n finis_fw-la